#I give him another couple of replies though
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
đđđ đđ đđ˛ đđ˘đŹ đđ¨đŻđ - PT.5
đđđ˘đŤđ˘đ§đ : Elvis Presley x Fem!Reader
đđŽđŚđŚđđŤđ˛ : 1972. Fame, wealth, and the haunting allure of Elvis Presleyâeverything Y/N could ever want, except the one thing that really matters: a simple, normal life. Hired as the nanny for Lisa Marie Presley, Y/N is thrown into the heart of the Presley world, where she quickly becomes more than just a caretaker for Elvis's daughter. As Priscilla remains distant, Y/N steps in, offering Lisa Marie the affection and attention she craves. But itâs Elvis, cold and aloof at first, who soon becomes captivated by her. With 15 years between them, Elvis begins to blur the lines between professional and personal, showering Y/N with gifts and flirting dangerously. He may be married, but that doesn't stop him from wanting Y/N. Torn between duty and desire, Y/N must face the growing tension, knowing that giving in could shatter everything sheâs worked for. Will she resist the King of Rock and Roll, or will his love prove impossible to escape?
đđŤđ˘đ đ đđŤđŹ/đđđŤđ§đ˘đ§đ đŹ : Cussing, mention of cheating from Cilla, emotional manipulation, drug, alcohol, Elvis being drugged and drunk :(
You wake up to the soft glow of morning light streaming through your curtains. With a deep breath, you stretch, trying to shake off the remnants of sleep. Itâs another day at Graceland, and while the routine has settled into something familiar, a part of you canât shake the unpredictability that seems to hover over the Presley household.
After dressing and gathering your things, you make your way to the grand estate. The drive feels ordinary, but as soon as you arrive, something feels... different. You park your car and approach the front door, your heels clicking faintly against the pavement. When you step inside, the first thing you notice is Elvis, standing in the foyer.
You blink in surprise. Heâs not usually around when you arriveâat least, not this early. His presence throws you off for a moment, and you canât help but wonder, Why did I have to come in if heâs here? The question lingers in your mind, but you donât dare voice it.
Instead, you offer a polite smile. âGood morning, Mr. Presley.â
He looks up from the paper in his hands, his piercing blue eyes catching yours. âMorninâ,â he replies, his southern drawl thick, but his tone more casual than usual.
âWhereâs Mrs. Presley?â you ask carefully, glancing around.
âSheâs in L.A. for a couple days,â he says, folding the paper in half. âWorkinâ on somethinâ.â
You nod, though his answer leaves you with more questions than it does clarity. âGot it. Iâll head upstairs to see Lisa Marie.â
He nods back, already distracted by something on the nearby table. You slip past him and head toward Lisa Marieâs room, each step easing the strange tension you felt downstairs.
_____
When you step into Lisa Marieâs room, her face lights up like sunshine breaking through clouds. âY/N!â she squeals, dropping the stuffed bear sheâs been holding and running straight toward you.
âGood morning, little lady!â you say with a laugh, crouching down just in time to catch her in a big hug. Her tiny arms wrap around your neck, squeezing tight as though she hadnât just seen you yesterday.
âI missed you!â she declares dramatically, pulling back to look at you with her pouty expression.
You chuckle softly, brushing some of her wild curls away from her face. âMissed me? But I was here yesterday, silly goose!â
Lisa shakes her head stubbornly. âYeah, but it feews wike forever!â
âWell, Iâm here now,â you say, standing up and ruffling her hair. âWhat are we doing today, huh? Dolls? Painting? Or maybe weâll have ourselves another tea party.â
Her face lights up even brighter as she grabs your hand and pulls you toward her bed, where a small tea set is already arranged neatly on the floor. âTea pawty! Tea pawty! You gotta sit here!â She points to the spot beside her, then quickly plops down in her own seat.
You settle in with a playful sigh. âAlright, Miss Presley, whatâs on the menu for todayâs tea?â
Lisa grabs a tiny teapot, her little hands fumbling slightly as she pretends to pour. âYou gonna hab... gween tea. Anâ Iâm gonna hab... da pink one.â She pauses, narrowing her eyes in concentration. âWaspberry fwavor. Itâs my favewit.â
You grin at her seriousness. âWell, that sounds just perfect. Thank you for the fancy tea, maâam.â
The two of you play like that for nearly an hour. She chatters non-stop, telling you all about her favorite cartoons, the new shoes her mommy bought her, and how her daddy let her stay up late last night to watch TV. Every now and then, you chime in with little comments or questions to keep her going.
Lisaâs energy is contagious, and before long, youâre both giggling like schoolgirls over some silly joke she made about her doll spilling tea.
But then, as youâre helping her change her doll into a different outfit, Lisa suddenly lowers her voice to a whisper. âY/N,â she says, leaning in like sheâs about to share a big secret.
You look at her curiously. âWhatâs up, sweetheart?â
âI saw Mommy kissinâ her wover,â she says matter-of-factly, her tiny voice laced with innocence.
Her words make you pause. âWhat do you mean, honey?â you ask, trying to keep your tone light even though her statement immediately sends your mind racing.
Lisa frowns slightly, her little hands fiddling with the dollâs dress. âI saw Mommy kissinâ her wover. Daddy wasnât home, and I was wookinâ out da window. She didnât see me.â
You sit back slightly, the doll slipping from your hands as you try to process what sheâs just said. âYou... saw Mommy and someone else?â
Lisa nods solemnly, her curls bouncing with the motion. âMhm. Her wover comes when Daddyâs gone sometimes.â
Your chest tightens, but you force yourself to stay calm. âLisa, whoâs her... lover?â
She tilts her head as if the answer should be obvious. âDa man Daddy fights wif. He wears da white cwothes, da kawate man.â
Her innocent words hit you like a ton of bricks. You feel your throat tighten as you struggle to figure out what to say. âLisa...â you begin hesitantly.
She looks up at you with those big, innocent eyes, completely unaware of the weight of what sheâs just told you. âWhat?â
You force a small smile, gently tucking one of her curls behind her ear. âNothinâ, sweetie. Letâs finish this tea party, okay?â
She beams at you, immediately returning to her game as if nothing had happened. But your mind is a whirlwind of thoughts and emotions. You canât stop thinking about Elvis and how he might react if he ever found out. He already seems tense whenever Priscilla is mentionedâhow much worse would it be if he knew his own daughter had seen something like this?
As Lisa continues pouring pretend tea, you do your best to focus on her, laughing when she does and playing along with her little jokes. But deep down, you feel the weight of the secret pressing harder and harder against your chest.
You spend the rest of the morning with Lisa Marie, playing games and reading her favorite picture books, but her words linger in your mind like a heavy cloud. Every now and then, you catch yourself zoning out, the sound of her laughter snapping you back to the present.
Itâs not just what Lisa saidâitâs the innocent way she said it, like it was no different from telling you about her tea party. She has no idea what kind of storm those words could cause, and youâre not sure what to do with the information.
By the time lunch rolls around, youâve decided to push the thoughts aside for now. Your job is to care for Lisa Marie, and that means keeping her happy and safe. The restâthe drama between her parents, the secrets sheâs accidentally revealedâfeels too big to deal with.
You head to the kitchen with Lisa Marie bouncing excitedly beside you, her little hand clutching yours. She chatters about what kind of sandwich she wantsââPeanut butter! No, wait! Cheese and ham! Nooo, peanut butter anâ jelly!ââswitching back and forth until you laugh softly.
âAlright, alright, peanut butter and jelly it is,â you say, leading her to the counter where she eagerly hops onto a stool.
As you begin gathering ingredients, you hear Lisa humming to herself, her feet swinging back and forth in rhythm. Her carefree energy is a welcome distraction from the knot still twisting in your stomach after what she told you earlier. You focus on the task at hand, spreading the jelly onto a slice of bread with slow, deliberate strokes.
Youâre so focused that you donât hear the footsteps behind you. Itâs only when you feel warm hands gently resting on your waist that you freeze, startled.
âMr.Presley?â you say, your voice barely above a whisper.
âYeah, itâs me,â he drawls, his voice low and slightly slurred. You catch a whiff of something strongâwhiskey, maybeâlingering on his breath. The sharp scent fills the space between you, making your stomach twist for an entirely different reason now.
You try to keep your tone light, though your heart pounds in your chest. âDidnât hear you come in.â
He doesnât respond right away, his hands still resting lightly on your waist. You can feel the heat of them through the thin fabric of your blouse, and it makes you feel strangely trapped.
âLisa wanted a sandwich,â you say quickly, gesturing to the ingredients on the counter. âI was justââ
âRelax,â he interrupts, his grip tightening ever so slightly as if to hold you still. âI ainât gonna bite.â
The teasing edge in his voice does little to soothe your nerves. You glance over at Lisa, who is still humming to herself, completely oblivious to the tension hanging in the room.
âMr.Presley..â you say gently, carefully stepping out of his grasp and turning to face him. âHave you been drinking?â
His blue eyes meet yours, and for a moment, thereâs a flicker of something vulnerable in them. Then he shrugs, his expression shifting into something more guarded. âJust a little. Whatâs it to you?â
You hesitate, choosing your words carefully. âItâs... nothing. I just thought you were busy this morning.â
âI was,â he mutters, running a hand through his dark hair. âBut things didnât exactly go how I wanted.â
His tone is clipped, and you decide not to press further. Instead, you turn back to the counter, picking up the knife and resuming your work.
âSandwiches, huh?â he says after a moment, leaning against the counter beside you. âWhatâre you makinâ for the princess?â
âPeanut butter and jelly,â you reply, keeping your focus on the bread. âShe couldnât decide at first, but I think weâve settled on this.â
âGood choice,â he says, his tone softening slightly. âKid loves her peanut butter.â
You glance over at him, catching the faintest smile on his lips as he watches Lisa. Itâs a small moment of tenderness, and it reminds you of why you took this job in the first placeâbecause despite everything, Elvis genuinely loves his daughter.
âI should finish this,â you say, your voice barely above a whisper as you focus on assembling the sandwich.
He doesnât say anything, but you can feel his eyes on you, heavy and unreadable. You work in silence, the tension in the air almost suffocating. Finally, you place the sandwich on a plate and slide it over to Lisa, who claps her hands in delight.
âFank you, Y/N!â she says brightly, immediately digging in.
You smile at her, but the moment is short-lived. Elvis is still there, still watching, and you canât shake the feeling that something is brewing beneath the surface.
âIâll leave yâall to it,â he finally says, pushing away from the counter. âGotta make a call.â
Heâs gone before you can respond, his footsteps fading down the hall. You let out a breath you didnât realize youâd been holding, glancing at Lisa, who seems blissfully unaware of everything.
âMore juice, Lisa?â you ask, trying to steady your voice.
She nods enthusiastically, and you busy yourself with pouring her a drink, thankful for the distraction. But even as you focus on Lisa, you canât stop thinking about the way Elvis smelled of alcohol, the way his hands lingered, the way his mood shifted so quickly.
Something tells you this day is far from over.
The rest of the afternoon with Lisa Marie goes smoothlyâat least as smoothly as it can, given the events of the morning. After her sandwich, she insists on building a blanket fort in the living room, pulling you into her imaginative world where youâre both princesses guarding a castle. Her laughter echoes through the house, and for a little while, you almost forget the tension that lingers just beneath the surface.
By the time two oâclock rolls around, Lisa is yawning, her small body sagging against your side as you read her a story on the couch.
âThink itâs time for a nap, little princess,â you say softly, brushing her hair out of her eyes.
âNooo,â she whines, though her voice lacks its usual conviction. She rubs her eyes with her fists, her resistance half-hearted.
âCâmon,â you coax gently, lifting her into your arms. She doesnât fight you, resting her head on your shoulder as you carry her upstairs to her room.
You settle her into bed, tucking her in and brushing a soft kiss against her forehead. âSweet dreams, Lisa.â
ââNight, Y/N,â she murmurs sleepily, already drifting off.
_____
As the afternoon grows quiet with Lisa Marie down for her nap, you begin tidying up in the kitchen. The faint sounds of the house settling around you are interrupted by Elvisâs voice booming from upstairs.
âY/N! Get up here!â
You freeze, startled by the sheer force of his tone, then quickly wipe your hands on a dish towel and head toward the staircase. Your heart beats a little faster with every step as his voice echoes again, sharper this time.
âHurry up, damn it!â
When you reach the office, you push the door open hesitantly. The sight before you stops you in your tracks. Elvis is slumped in his chair, his elbows resting on the cluttered desk. A half-empty bottle of whiskey gleams in the dim light, flanked by a scattered pile of pills. His face is flushed, his eyes glassy, and his tie hangs loose around his neck.
âYou wanted to see me?â you ask cautiously, lingering by the door.
âYeah, come in,â he drawls, gesturing for you to step closer. âClose the door.â
You obey, swallowing hard as you approach his desk. The smell of alcohol is strong, mingling with his cologne in a way thatâs almost suffocating.
âWhatâs going on?â
He leans back in his chair, his smile lazy and slightly crooked. âGot my boys cominâ over tonight. Thought itâd be a good time for you to meet âem.â
You blink, surprised. âMe? I donât think Priscilla wouldââ
âPriscilla ainât here,â he cuts in sharply, his tone hardening. âSheâs in L.A., doinâ God knows what.â
Still, you hesitate. âI just donât think itâs appropriateââ
âWho the hell made the goddamn rules here?â he snaps, his voice rising as he slams his hand on the desk, making you jump. âThis is my house, and I do whatever I damn well please!â
Your heart pounds as his words hang in the air. You can barely process how quickly heâs turned from casual to angry. The pills, the alcoholâthey clearly werenât doing much to smooth the sharp edges of his temper.
He stands abruptly, his movements unsteady but deliberate as he rounds the desk. Before you can back away, his hands are on your hips, pulling you close.
You freeze, your breath catching as you feel the warmth of his palms through your dress. His grip is firm, almost possessive, but his expression softens as he looks down at you.
âIâm sorry...â he murmurs, his voice quieter now, almost tender. âDidnât mean to scare ya, darlinâ. Been a rough day, yâknow?â
You nod slightly, unsure of what to say as his hands remain on your hips.
The sudden shift in his demeanor sends a chill down your spine. Youâve already noticed how erratic he can be, but this⌠this was something else. Even with the pills and the alcohol, his mood swings were as sharp as a knifeâs edge.
âCâmon..â he says, his tone softening even further. âJust say youâll stay. Meet my boys. Itâll mean a lot to me.â
The shift in his demeanor is dizzying. The anger from moments ago has melted into something gentler, almost pleading. You hesitate, but the vulnerability in his gaze tugs at you.
âAlright,â you say finally, your voice barely above a whisper. âIâll stay.â
A smile spreads across his face, and he leans down to press a kiss to your forehead. The gesture is warm but reeks of whiskey, and it leaves your skin tingling.
âAtta girl,â he says, his voice low and approving. âKnew youâd come âround.â
You glance down at his desk, taking in the mess of pills and the amber liquid in his glass. âBut... I donât really have anything to wear,â you add quickly, hoping to create some distance.
âThatâs alright,â he says, stepping back slightly but still holding your hips. âGo home, take the rest of the afternoon off. Pick somethinâ nice for tonight. Iâll be waitinâ.â
You nod, grateful for the chance to leave, and step away from him as he returns to his chair. As you walk out of the office, the weight of the encounter lingers heavily on your shoulders.
By the time youâre back downstairs, your mind is racing. The thought of spending the evening with Elvis and his friends leaves you uneasy, but his insistenceâand the way he looked at youâmakes it impossible to say no.
The afternoon sun feels warmer as you step out of Graceland, the heavy door shutting behind you with a firm thud. The tension still clings to your skin like a stubborn weight, and you take a moment to inhale the crisp air, hoping it might settle your nerves.
Sliding into your car, you grip the steering wheel tightly, replaying the strange encounter in Elvisâs office. His mood swings were jarringâone moment fiery and commanding, the next soft and apologetic. Despite the pills and the whiskey, his sudden shifts in demeanor still managed to surprise you.
The drive home is quiet. The familiar hum of the engine and the winding streets you know so well offer a fleeting sense of calm. By the time you reach your small apartment, the knot in your stomach has loosened only slightly.
Inside, the space feels still and cold, almost distant compared to the chaos youâd left behind. You drop your bag on the worn couch and stand in the middle of the room for a moment, staring into the quiet. The weight of the afternoon presses on youâElvisâs touch, his words, the strange power he holds in every interaction.
You shake your head and make your way to the kitchen, grabbing a glass of water to steady yourself. Leaning against the counter, you stare out the small window above the sink. A part of you wonders why you didnât just say no to him, why you felt compelled to agree despite the unease twisting in your chest.
Setting the glass down, you sink onto the couch, letting out a long sigh. The thought of returning to Graceland later sits heavily in your mind, but you know thereâs no way around it now.
For now, though, you try to let the quiet of your apartment wrap around you, grounding yourself in the normalcy of home.
To be continued...
Tags : @pxpresley @jhoneybees đ¤
#elvis presley#elvis fans#elvis photos#elvis presley x reader#elvis the king#elvis the pelvis#elvis x reader#elvis history#elvis presley x y/n#elvis presely smut#elvis aaron presley#smut#love#i love him
49 notes
¡
View notes
Text
@waltzofphoenix
Kaveh would force himself to take a deep breath in and hold it, even if that still wouldn't keep his hands from clinching tight at his side in pure frustration. The only thing that kept the architect from completely lashing out at Alhaitham's response was the fact the other had cushioned the blow with a one off remark.
'Since you've already bought it, however, I suppose I will try to find somewhere I can put it-'
" Hmph! Hasn't anyone ever told you that you should at least act grateful for the things you receive on your birthday? Besides! I thought you, of all people, would actually appreciate a borning, 'useless' wood carving, if nothing else. You've bought some to decorate your place before, haven't you? So what's wrong with this one? "
'Easy, Kaveh,' he'd sigh internally to himself, 'We're here for a party, remember? No matter how insufferable Alhaitham is, you can't let him get to you and ruin the atmosphere.'
"Look, I'm just trying to treat you on your birthday. You've treated me to plenty of drinks before, so...just let me buy you one today? Okay? You can give it away to someone else if you really want-"
#waltzofphoenix#⏊⏊⢠ic: kaveh#[ the amount of self control Kaveh's hanging onto tho#just to keep himself from snapping at Alhaitham here#is actually impressive xD#I give him another couple of replies though#before he absolutely explodes ]
12 notes
¡
View notes
Text
¡.â đđđđđđđđ. youâve been one of sukunaâs many concubines for quite a while now. yet, you still cannot get rid of the jealousy in your system whenever he interacts with the other women in his harem.
wc. idk around 1 to 2k
tags. true form!sukuna x concubine!female reader. angst (hurt to comfort), fluff, suggestive at the end. heian era. you call sukuna âmy lordâ. reader gets called âbrat, little girlâ. size difference. no part2, donât ask i beg. not beta read.
âget back here, brat,â sukuna raises his voice as he follows you. he isnât one to care about othersâ emotional outbursts, yet here he is, chasing you after youâve poured out your heart to him.
you donât know why youâre this upset. you do know, however, that itâs childish of you to walk away mid dinner. you shouldâve just stayed seated and refuse to let the thoughts consume you.
now youâre speed walking down the hallways of the estateâyour legs carrying you as fast as they can without actually making a run for it. your mind keeps replaying the âunsettlingâ scene that caused you to flee.
you remember it vividly. the sound of sukunaâs low, amused chuckle. how intrigued it was because of something another concubine told himâhow he stopped chewing to say something back to her. which he rarely does.
hell, youâve never seen him laugh around his other concubines.
âi do not wish to talk to you right now, my lord,â you reply, voice raised so the distance wouldnât make it a hassle for the king of curses to hear you. you know that feisty attitude of yours entertains sukuna to no end.
he raises an eyebrow once heâs heard your voice; how itâs dripping with envy and hurt. youâve never reacted like that beforeâat least not in his presence. it made him want to figure out why and how.
though, he can easily guess the reasoning behind your sudden defiance.
âoh, that so?â sukuna hums. heâs lenient with you this time around. he could catch up to you in under a split second, but he decides to give you that sense of accomplishment first before completely destroying it. he walks after you slowly, your fast steps being the same tempo as his slow pace.
you donât answer. youâre stubborn. you have no right to feel jealous. you are a fairly new concubineâonly a couple months ago did you join sukunaâs harem. yet, the time spent with him was precious.
he treats you differently. everyone notices that. everyone tells you the same. you know he does by the way he lets you off the hook with most stuff you say and do.
you donât know what you did to gain his favouritsm, but itâs addicting. his attention is addictive. real addictive.
you had sworn not to develop any unneccessary feelings for that ruthless sorcerer. but, with the way sukuna treated you so gently behind closed doors, it was impossible not to.
you eventually reach the doors to your chambers. you slide them open and wish to close them behind you, only for a big hand to halt those movements. you freeze in place and refuse to look up at the owner of that said hand.
âlook up,â sukuna demands. his voice causes goosebumps to appear on your arms, but you still don't budge. he clicks his tongue. thatâs your first warning. two more and your punishment will be carried out, âwe can do this the hard way too if you want.â
you turn your head, your fingers curling around the material of your kimono. you really should not feel this way about a little interaction between sukuna and his other concubine. that is none of your concern. what he does with those other women is none of your concern.
and yet. . .
âi don't want to,â you retort. sukuna walks into your room with a sigh. each step he takes forwards, you take backwards. your back finally bumps against the wall next to your bed.
sukuna towers over you, his tall and big frame making you feel vulnerable. especially with the way those red eyes of his are staring down at you. he crosses all four of his arms before speaking.
âtell me whatâs running through that head of yours,â sukuna inquires sternly. he isnât playing around anymore, you can tell. you glance the other wayâknowing that he will laugh at you the moment you tell him why youâre upset.
you have a feeling he knows the reason behind your tantrum anyway.
âitâs nothing of importance, my lord,â you shake your head and relax your tense shoulders to make you seem less upset. your words have some truth in themâyou donât think your feelings of envy hold any value to him.
sukuna sighs again. heâs trying his best not to be annoyed at you. youâre his favorite and he wishes not to sadden you any further. he steps forwards, one hand moving to cup the side of your face.
his rough fingers play with a string of your hair, âiâm not stupid, little girl. i donât like it when my woman is in distress.â
your heart skips a beat. this is what confuses youâhow he can go from stern to gentle and vice versa. itâs surprisingly unexpected, which makes you long for more. even if his behaviour is confusing.
you look up at sukuna. your eyes meet for the first time in a good couple minutes. the corner of sukunaâs lips curls up into a satisfied smirk. thatâs one step closer to getting you to open up.
ânow,â the king of curses lowers his head to your eye level, the proximity all the more nerve wracking. he holds your jaw super tightly out of the blue. it makes you whimper.
âspit it out.â
there it is. the duality of the man strikes once more. you swallow the spit thatâs been building up in your mouth. you bite your bottom lip lightly, trying to gather and form the right words to explain yourself.
sukuna wouldnât understand. heâs a cold-hearted man who doesnât care about such âtrivialâ matters. heâll just call you stupid, pathetic or whatever other derogatory term.
you stop your thoughts for a moment.
âitâs really just a stupid thing,â you mutter. your fingers curl around sukunaâs wristâthe one hand heâs using to firmly hold your jaw. you take a deep breath in, âi did not like it when you, errr. . . when that woman talked to you at the dinner table.â
your voice is clearly dripping with jealousy. pure, pure jealousy. and for what? because he talked to his other concubine. you feel stupid. you thought you discarded your personal feelings for the sorcerer before you the moment you turned into one of his many women.
âthat woman?â sukuna tilts his head, feigning ignorance. that little grin on his face tells you enough. heâs playing with you like some form of entertainment. well, technically you are.
he wants you to be specific. heâs forcing you to be by acting like he doesnât know what youâre talking about.
in all honesty, sukunaâs already forgotten what that woman had said to him. it wasnât and still isnât worth remembering. all he can recall is your adorable facial expression when you saw him interact like that with his other concubine.
that little frown on your face was priceless. it makes him want to keep teasing you.
âyou know who i am talking about, my lord,â you huff, trying to look away, but get stopped by sukuna readjusting his grip on your jaw. he firmly yet gently taps your cheek once and you know what it means.
âattitude,â sukuna warns with a quick hiss. he can let you say whatever you want to him, but you also have some limits regarding which tone you use with him. you apologise quietly under your breath.
the king of curses nods in satisfaction before releasing the grip on your jaw. his large hand trails down to your neck, thumb rubbing up and down your throat, âso, my little girl is mad at me because i talked to another concubine of mine, huh?â
you nod mindlessly. sukuna can easily get you to comply with himâto obey his every word, simply with his actions. the terms of endearment he uses are the cherry on top. they slip off his tongue so easily with you.
âtsk tsk,â sukuna shakes his head. his hand is now on the back of your head, fingers tangled into your hair. heâs staring down at you with a smug expression. he knows heâs got you wrapped around his finger, âhow childish of you.â
you knew that would be one of the things heâd say to you. what you didnât expect is for him to go for a kiss right after. his lips land on yours firmly, and to no surprise, you instantly return the gesture.
your arms wrap around his neckâyour chest pressing against his. sukuna wastes no time in picking you up and letting your legs encircle his waist. heâs not pulling away for air to breathe and you donât either.
âyouâre going to listen to me, yeah?â sukuna murmurs between passionate kisses. heâs holding onto you tightly with two arms, his free hands roaming over your body whilst he pins you against the wall.
when you whimper out a weak, high-pitched âyes, my lordâ, he smirks against your mouth before turning to kiss your neck. he slightly bites the skin to make sure youâre paying attention to him.
âi donât remember what that woman said,â sukuna continues, nearly out of breath because of the kisses heâs leaving all over you. he easily grabs both your wrists and pins them above your head on the wall, âi was too busy lookinâ at a much prettier concubine of mine.â
he pulls back a little so he can look you in the eyes. youâre panting and embarrassed by what he just said. one of his hands finds your face again, tracing the shape of your mouth.
âmy favourite,â sukuna whispers whilst licking his lips. you can see it in his eyes: heâs silently planning out how heâs going to remind you of your place. your place as his favorite concubine.
he dips his head back down, aiming for the valley between your breasts. he closes his eyes before sucking on the surrounding flesh;
âguess iâll be nice for once ând show you just what it means to be my favorite so that youâll never dare forget it again.â
9K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Wedding Nerves : ĚĚâ Lando Norris
summary: it's the night before your wedding and lando can't bare to spend it all alone
Your head shook as another knock at the door came, knowing exactly who was on the other side. You tried your best to ignore it as you unpacked your suitcase, but they were ever so persistent, knocking once again.Â
âLando, you shouldnât be here,â you called out, walking over to the door. âYou can stand there all night long but Iâm not opening the door. The boys will all be wondering where you are.âÂ
âI donât care abou them,â Lando replied, leaning against the other side of the door. âI just want to see you one last time before tomorrow, just a couple of minutes, thatâs all that Iâm asking for.âÂ
Your eyes closed as you leant on the door, hearing Lando sigh. His voice was desperate as he tapped on the door once again, letting you know that he was still there. You could only smile at how determined Lando was, refusing to go without seeing you.Â
âYouâll get to see me forever after tomorrow,â you tried to assure him, âitâs only one night away from each other, weâve done it hundreds of times before.âÂ
Landoâs head shook, âthis time itâs different, itâs our wedding morning tomorrow.âÂ
âWhy are you here Lando?â You groaned, beginning to think that there was more to things than he was letting on. âSomethingâs not gone wrong, has it?âÂ
His head shook, remembering that you couldnât see him. âI spoke to George and he said Carmen told him that you were feeling nervous. I wanted to come and see you and make sure that you were alright, I donât want you to be nervous, you should be excited.âÂ
âI am excited,â you responded, dropping down to the floor, âtomorrow is just such a big deal, and thereâs so many people going to be there. I hate having all that attention on me, thatâs all.âÂ
Lando remained where he was, only wanting to see you more now that he knew how you felt, keen to settle your nerves and reassure you not to worry.Â
âLet me see you and just give you a hug,â Lando requested, tapping the door once again. âWeâre fine to see each other, tradition is only tomorrow morning, not that either of us really care about that anyway.âÂ
The sound of the lock turning made Lando jump up, watching as you opened the door slightly. It was wide enough for Lando to see you, but not open enough for him to be able to reach in and hold onto you.Â
âLando, I promise you that Iâm absolutely fine. Go and enjoy your evening.âÂ
âI canât see well enough to be sure,â he grinned, refusing to give up quite that easily, trying to push the door to fit his hand through it. âWhatâs the point of just letting me see a bit of you, why not just open the door all the way?âÂ
âBecause once youâre here I know you wonât go away,â you chuckled.Â
Landoâs eyes widened at your assumption, shaking his head in reply to you. The smile on his face told you otherwise though, you knew exactly what he was up to, and once he was in, there was no way that he was going to be walking back out again.Â
You tried your best to keep the door shut, but Lando was far stronger than you were, digging his heels into the ground and pushing the door open, stumbling over his feet and falling straight into your hotel room.Â
âServes you right,â you grinned, offering your hand to help him up. Â
Lando stood himself up and straightened his clothes before heading in your direction. His arms wrapped around your frame as he tightly held you against his chest, pressing several kisses against the top of your head, refusing to let go now that he had a hold of you.Â
Lando kicked the door to your hotel room shut, keeping you in his hold as he walked you both over to your bed, dropping down in the middle of it with you by his side, making himself comfortable like he was there for the night.Â
After a few moments, Landoâs hand trailed along your back. âThereâs no need to worry about tomorrow you know, itâs going to be perfect, Iâm sure of it.âÂ
With all the efforts you and Lando had put in, you knew there was no reason to worry, there was no chance of anything going wrong. You had the perfect place, perfect theme, and everyone who you wanted to attend was doing so, there was nothing more you could ask for.Â
âMaybe if you are nervous, it might be a good idea for me to stay here,â Lando added, catching your eyes roll. âI mean we both know how much it helps when you sleep next to me when youâre worrying, so it makes perfect sense, right?âÂ
âIâm not going to let you stay,â you said, quickly shutting Lando down.Â
Lando hummed in reply to you, âwe both know how this is going to work, Iâm going to wear you down until you say yes, you know that, donât you?âÂ
âNope,â you laughed, âI refuse to cave tonight, youâll be gone soon.âÂ
âYouâll have to get rid of me,â Lando told you, âand judging by your hand against my chest, Iâd say that youâre pretty happy for me to stay a while still yet.âÂ
You quickly moved your hand off of Landoâs chest, shuffling across the bed to create some distance between you both. Lando looked at you in surprise, trying to move back towards you again, only for you to move back too.Â
âItâs going to be a pretty rubbish stag do if youâre not there,â you reminded him, standing up from the bed. âPlus, you only said that you wanted a couple of minutes of my time.âÂ
âI donât need a stupid stag do, not when I could spend my night with you instead,â Lando sighed, sitting up in the middle of the bed. âDo you really actually want me to go?âÂ
You tried to ignore the little voice in your head telling Lando to stay, nodding your head. You didnât want him to miss out on his stag do, the party that he had been looking forward to for so long.Â
âI should probably go,â Lando pouted, sliding off of the bed. His shoulders hung low, his feet dragging along the floor dejectedly. âBut all you have to do is give me a call and Iâll forget all about the boys tonight and rush straight over here to be with you instead.âÂ
âGo on,â you grinned, opening up the door. âIâll be alright without you for one night.âÂ
Lando stood in the doorway, turning back to face you one final time, letting you see just how disappointed he was that you were making him leave.Â
âIn five years, I think this is the first time youâve declined to spend the night with me,â Lando mused, âand the night before my wedding too.âÂ
âIâm not declining to spend the night with you,â you protested, âthis is what we agreed on, youâre going to be stuck with me for the rest of your life after tomorrow anyway.âÂ
âI canât believe it,â Lando smiled, âthe rest of our lives together.âÂ
âOnly if you go,â you teased, pushing Lando out of the door. âGo and enjoy your evening, Iâll see you tomorrow Lando.âÂ
âI canât wait to marry you sweetheart.âÂ
âI know, me too Lan.âÂ
ËËË đđđđđđđđđđ ! ´ËË
#f1#f1 imagine#formula 1#lando norris#lando norris imagine#formula 1 x reader#f1 x reader#formula 1 imagine#formula 1 x you#formula one#f1 fanfic#f1 reaction#lando norris drabble#lando norris x you#lando norris fluff#lando norris x reader#formula x reader#formula one drabble#formula 1 drabble#formula one x reader#formula one imagine#formula 1 fic#formula 1 fanfic#f1 drabble#f1 fluff#f1 x you#f1 fic
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Ö´ÖśÖ¸ââ ࣪ Ö´ÖśÖ¸đŚŕźŕźŕż Kinktober D20- shower sex
âââââ ď¸ď¸ââââ
content: standing up sex in the shower duhh, chest play, they touch each other a lot, making out, strong jk (lowkey as always), cute lil aftercare, this is sweet
note from cherry: i really like including cute aftercare scenarios somtimes lmao
âââââ ď¸ď¸ââââ
"How's your skin so soft?" catching whims of your vanilla scented shampoo, he nuzzles his head further into your neck, grazing his hand up and down your wet arms,
"body scrub baby" you giggle, interwining your fingers behind his waist, his own naked body presses close to yours, for a moment, only the sound of water running can be heard, alongside both of your soft, steady breaths
"you're so pretty.. and you smell so nice" he mutters through kisses to your shoulder, having his hand run down from your arms to your waist, rubbing his palm into the skin before carefully guiding them to your chest,
the warm water falls gently down on you, his delicate touches make you feel sensual beneath them- beautiful, almost as if nothing else existed outside of his hands on your body
"mh.. so relaxing like this" his hands squeeze your tits carefully, palming them with the Intention to give you every little ounce of affection you deserve, slowly embracing your flesh into his hands,
he smiles against your neck, planting smaller pecks up to your jaw until he lets his lips rest on your forhead for a second, lingering while his attention stays on your chest, now with a little more pressure to your hard buds, teasing them with his thumbs
"wanna take care of you" Jungkook says, the tip of his nose rubbing against yours affectionately, your own hands have gone all across his back, leaving small shivers on his body once meeting his lower abdomen, the little puffs of his exhales fanning on your lips
"I'd love that" you reply, pressing a warm kiss to his lips, he doesn't break it- keeps his lips moving against yours slowly, deeply engaged in your passionate kiss,
Although slow and loving, the need behind it is evident, his tongue swiftly pushes inside your mouth, wrapping around yours,
while he kisses you under the running water, his arms come down to touch your hips, hands rubbing the smooth skin on your thighs, before grabbing them by the side and mumbling for you to jump
once in his embrace, both of you smile- a tiny gasp leaves your pillowed lips as the wet tile collides with your back, long, drenched strands of hair sticking to your chest and the sides of your face
"I love you" you tell him, entranced with the sparkle in his eyes, the droplets of water that decorate his muscles, how his hair sticks to his forehead messily,
"I ove you too baby" he answers, ghosting his lips over yours, his gaze flicker down to your legs wrapped around his hips, hoisted up against the wall
Combined moans and soft sighs fill up the shower, his length pushing into you carefully, sensuallly but nonetheless with enough vigour to elicit those sweet, desperate sounds,
he doesn't pull out much, making sure to keep your body against the wall without any pain, locked on your eyes while he thrusts into you,
your fingers dig into his shoulders, attempting to convey how good he feels without needing to speak, peaceful yet passionate,
the knot in your stomach tightens, you decide to let him now, pulling him in for another slow kiss, "m'close baby" you whisper against his plump lips, taking his wet hair into your fingers,
he groans into the kiss, nodding a little to let you know he's close too, the grip on your thighs never loosening, his hips never slowling down- they become a little sloppier though, legs flexing with each push into your spread legs
as soon as he hears your slightly strangled moan, he pulls out, letting himself come down your leg, his lips immediately latching on to yours, this time staying still, pressed up against your own ones, almost as if to freeze the moment- letting your highs fade out
You pull away after a couple, long seconds, the floor to your feet returning,
"that was so good angel" he whispers, pulling your head into his firm chest, your arms wrap around him, as do his own arms around you, engulfed tightly in each others embrace
"So good kook" you hum, looking up to his satisfied face, he starts planting little kisses on your head, "all mine, let me spoil you now"
and so he did, washed your entire body without a hint of sexual Implication- pure, innocent appreciation for your body as he massaged the body wash in, rinsing it off with warm water that soothes your aching hips,
he gets you out the shower, dries you off while making sure to kiss you here and there, sits you on his lap to coat your thighs and stomach in body lotion, his mouth working softly to kiss your delicate shoulders with every stroke to your body,
He takes care of every step after, dressing you in pjamas, brushing and drying your hair to its silky soft state, applying your skincare like you could break if he pressed to hard,
until you end up snoozing in bed, tangled in each others arms
#redcherrykook#jeon jungkook#jungkook x reader#jungkook x y/n#jungkook smut#bts fanfic#jungkook x you#jungkook fluff#bts kinktober
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
With Bared Teeth & Prayers (Yandere Batfam X Neglected Reader) (Dark!!! Werewolf AU) (PT. 1)
TW: Mentions/allusions to cannibalism, death, and violence.
Three years had passed since that fateful day and your life had only gotten more miserable. Whatever hopes you had for being a part of a family were thwarted as soon as you stepped foot in the household. Bruce doesn't care about you, Dick was straight up mean, Jason (as the pack protector) was aggressive, Tim found you annoying, and Damien simply loathed your existence and would join Dick with his cruelty.
Both Stephanie and Barbara were civil with you, but neither really cared about what you did. Cassandra was nice, sometimes signing to you and giving you scented clothing, but she still didn't really go out of her way to engage with you. The only person who you felt truly cared about you was Alfred.
The first two years you tried your hardest to fit in and get the others to like you. You did whatever they wanted, made sure to learn their interests so you could talk to them, never complained, and made sure to respect the pack's boundaries.
You hoped that eventually, youâd all move past this hurdle and soon you would get along and be allowed in the pack den and other pack activities. Unfortunately, you realized that you would never be considered part of the family or the pack. Which as heartbreaking as it was, was the least of your worries.
You see, there was an ancient custom in werewolf culture concerning new pack members and pack initiation. When a new werewolf is introduced to a pack and their territory, the new werewolf has a certain amount of time to be accepted into the pack; if theyâre not, well, they're killed and eaten.Â
Yeah⌠quite terrifying and barbaric if you think about it, but mostly only the old lineages still continue this practice. Which is why youâre absolutely fucked. See, typically when children come to a pack they get accepted immediately, pups were (usually) considered precious.
In your case, being a half-blood severely reduced your chances and well, you guessed the Wayne family just didn't like you. Which sucks because you only have until your 18th birthday to get them to accept you, and considering your 16th birthday was coming up, your time was coming to a close.Â
Or, you could always just run away. Hey! It was an option, one that you weren't sure the Bats would even let happen. Still it was worth a try. Which leads to your current situation in Bruce's office; you were trying to cut your losses a little early.
~~~~~~
âLook, I just feel as though this is the best course of action for your packâs and my own safety.â Came your exasperated and desperate voice.
âSafety?â Bruce questions, causally flipping through some Wayne Industries documents, as if he doesn't know exactly what you're talking about.
âConsidering Damianâs tried to kill me five times, two of his attempts almost being successful, and Jason's pit aggression that has him ready to rip my throat out, you can see why someone would feel unsafe.â You state, voice raising slightly in pitch.
He hummed noncommittally, his eyes still focusing on whatever paperwork he was going over.
âI'll think about it.â He replies, still disinterested.
âThereâs nothing to think about! I should be allowed to leave if I want to, and if anything I'll finally be out of your pack's way.â You say, finally letting your frustration show through.
Why couldn't he just let you leave? Did he seriously want to keep you here just to killâ sorry, eat you in another two years?
âExcuse me?â He finally looks up from his work, his blue eyes meeting yours. He was unimpressed, you could tell that much at least, coupled with a dark look of simmering anger.
Okay, so maybe you should tone it down a notch.
âCome on, I'm not an idiot. I know me being here is simply a public formality, good fluff bits for the press y'know. But I'm not part of your family, and I'm certainly not part of your pack. You and the others have made that very clear. So please, allow me to do us both a favor and get out of your way.â You add.
âWhere would you go?â
âHuh?â You blink in surprise.
âWhere would you go?â Bruce repeats again.
âThatâthat is honestly none of your concern.â
âNone of my concern? Aren't I entitled to know where my kid is?â
âNo, youâre not. Sure you're biologically considered my father, but we all know I'm not really considered your kid.â
âIs that what you think?â He questions.
âAm I supposed to think any differently?â
âYou carry the Wayne surname do you not?â
âI do.â
âThen you belong to the Waynes. To me. Which means that I decide what happens to you.â
There was the familiar darkness that you saw pooling in Bruceâs eyes, the type that left the Joker a tortured mess, the type that disemboweled Raâs Al Ghul, the type of darkness that reminded you that Batman doesnât kill. Oh no, he maims and tortures instead.
You unconsciously take a careful step back.Â
Bruceâs stare felt like ice, and his words hung in the air, thick and heavy with an authority that was absolute. You wanted to argue, to say something, but every instinct in your body screamed for caution. There was a darkness in his gaze that you had seen glimpses of before, but never directed at you, and now it was there, unblinking, cutting through any hope youâd harbored for mercy or understanding.
Your heart hammered, yet you forced yourself to stand straighter, swallowing down the instinctive fear.Â
âWith all due respect,â you began, your voice smaller than you intended but steady, âstaying here for another two years just for you all toâto follow through with thatâcustom, doesnât seem fair.â
Bruceâs expression didnât soften, but his posture shifted slightly, his gaze piercing through you like he could see every thought you tried to hide.Â
âBelonging is earned. It isnât granted because of blood,â he stated coldly. âIf you truly wish to belong somewhere, you work for it.â
âIâve tried,â you said, voice thick with frustration. âIâve tried everything. Iâve followed your rules, I tried with everyone, and stayed out of everyoneâs way. But nothing I do is good enough.â
âYou assume that acceptance is given on your terms,â he replied, voice as controlled as ever. âPack structure doesnât bend to anyoneâs whims. Least of all a half-blood who hasnât proven their loyalty.â
The words stung, tearing open a wound that you thought had scarred over. You clenched your fists, feeling the sharp ache of your own nails digging into your palms. âAnd what exactly does proving myself look like here? Surviving Damianâs attacks? Letting Jason rip me apart every chance he gets?â
âWatch your tone,â he warned, his voice low, cutting through any retort youâd planned.
You took a shaky breath, forcing yourself to take another step back from his desk. Challenging him wouldnât help. Heâd already decided where you stood, and nothing you said would change that. Maybe it was better to save your energy, conserve your strength for the day youâd finally slip away.
âUnderstood,â you said, swallowing the bitterness in your throat. âIf thatâs how it is, then Iâll stay out of everyoneâs way.â
 But youâd still leave when the time comes.
Bruceâs gaze hardened, like he knew what you were thinking. âYour place is here until I decide otherwise,â he said, a finality in his tone that told you any further argument would only worsen things.
He dismissed you with a look, returning to his papers as if the conversation were over, as if you were no longer there. Every step you took out of the office felt heavier, like the manor itself was holding you down, binding you to this place that was never truly a home.
As you closed the door behind you, the cold emptiness of the hallway wrapped around you, and you knew thenâyou were on your own. If you were to survive this, it would be on your own terms.
It's like clockwork when Alfred calls you down for dinner. The same time, the same routine.
You show up to dinner, hands still shaking and mind still reeling from your disturbingly cryptic conversation with Bruce. But, never mind that youâd just eat quietly and leave like you always do. You moved to your normal seat only to find that all the chairs near the end of the table had disappeared. What the actual fuck. Was this some type of powerplay? Something to imply that you didnât even have a seat at their table anymore?Â
You mean, you wouldn't mind eating in the safety and comfort of your own room. With an exasperated sigh, which had a couple of heads turn their attention to you, you grabbed an empty plate and started loading it up with food. You were about to head back to your room when you heard an outraged growl from behind you.
The kind of growl that had you tensing, ready to submit and roll onto your back.
âWhere the hell do you think youâre going?â Jason growled out from behind you.
You freeze.
âTo my room?â You responded meekly, curling in on yourself as much as you could.
âAnd pray tell, why do you think thatâd be acceptable?â
âUhâum, âcause my seatsâ gone?â
Jason only smirked, the feral kind that almost always promised pain to his enemies.
âOh, but your chair isn't gone, it's right here.â Jason says pointing to a chair right near the head of the table.
You blanked. That's not right. Only pack was allowed that close to the head of the table, where Bruce sat, where the pack leader sat.
âB-But, I canâtââ
âDid that sound like a suggestion?â
You shook your head no, swallowing down a whimper that almost escaped your lungs.
âThen sit your ass down,â Jason growled.
He didn't have to tell you twice.
Immediately you shakily sat down in your new seat, on the left side of Bruceâs seat at the head of the table with Jason sitting at your left shoulder and Dick across from you. Not good, not good at all. You could feel the acidic, green gaze of Jason burning into the side of your face whilst Dick languidly sipped his wine, a sickeningly sweet smile (with way too many teeth to be considered anything but malicious), plastered on his face as he stared at the new seating chart. You let out a shaky breath, trying to get your heart rate back to normal; you were so gonna die tonight.
Thankfully, Bruce arrived and sat himself in his seat at the head of the table; right next to you. You closed your eyes, trying to focus on getting air in your lungs and slowing your racing heart. Unbeknownst to you, Bruce shot a knowing stare at the rest of the table. As much as you tried to conceal it, they could all hear your rapidly fluttering heartbeat and your poorly hidden breathing. Tim and Jason both watched you amused; you looked so darn pathetic, sitting there trembling like a leaf.Â
You glanced down at your plate, picking at the food without really tasting it, hoping that staying silent would help you melt into the background.
Bruce, however, remained still and silent, his presence looming over you, radiating the authority that seemed to keep everyone else in check. But even that felt like a facade; the way his gaze lingered on you for a split second too long told you he was watching closely, assessing.
You forced yourself to take a bite, trying to steady your hands enough to appear somewhat composed. But the sound of your own heartbeat seemed to echo in your ears, loud and unrelenting, as if amplifying the anxiety that twisted in your gut. They could hear it too; you knew that much from the way Jasonâs smirk deepened, from the way Timâs lips twitched with barely-contained laughter.
As the dinner dragged on, every clink of a fork, every quiet murmur, felt like it was directed at you. The food turned to ash in your mouth, each bite only reminding you of the eyes trained on you, dissecting you with every chew and every breath.
The rest of the dinner passed in strained silence, every second an endurance test as you forced yourself to stay seated, to keep your head down. When Bruce finally pushed his chair back and dismissed everyone, the wave of relief was almost enough to make you lightheaded. Quick as a whip, you practically ran up the stairs towards the safety and solace of your room.
When you make it, the locks on your door are immediately fastened (not that it would do much if anyone wanted to actually force their way in). You exhale in relief as you try to collect your thoughts. Fuck, everything was going to shit; the worst part being you had school tomorrow (which thankfully you did not go to Gotham Prep; you'd kill yourself if you did). You groaned at the thought, digging the heels of your palms into your eyes to relieve the ache shooting through them.
Looks like another night of shitty sleep.
Taglist!!: @lostsomewhereinthegarden, @the-rouge-robin, @confused-they
#platonic yandere#batfamily#yandere batfam#neglected reader#yandere jason todd#yandere cassandra cain#yandere bruce wayne#yandere damian wayne#yandere dick grayson#yandere tim drake#yandere batfamily#batfam#batfamily x reader#batfam x reader#yandere batfamily x reader#yandere batman#yandere batboys#werewolves#werewolf#werewolf au#dark#cw: gore#tw violence#fem reader#female reader
1K notes
¡
View notes
Note
Imagine max x driver!reader with the whole fia and swearing situation theyâd be such a power couple. Manifesting more max fics!! I love all your work esp little bitch and honorary wagđ
okay this is teeeny tiny piece but i just had tooo. max is too iconic
You're sitting beside Max, your boyfriend and teammate, in the press conference room after the qualifying session in Singapore. The air feels thick with humidity and tension, though most of the tension is radiating off Max.
His latest penalty from the FIAâa fine and community service for swearing âhas him fuming. He made it very clear on the way in that he wasnât going to play nice. Today was going to be a day of vague, shady responses, and you were more than happy to back him up.
The moderator starts with the usual question for Max about how he felt securing P2.
âIt was fine,â Max replies, voice completely flat. No elaboration, no typical analysis. Just that.
The reporter stares at him, clearly expecting more, but Max leans back in his chair, eyes narrowing slightly as if daring anyone to push him further.
To your right, Lando is barely holding it together, his mouth twitching as he watches the whole scene unfold. You catch his eye and he shoots you a look like, Is this real?
The next question is directed at you. Something predictable about how youâre feeling being P3, your thoughts on tomorrowâs race strategy.
âWell,â you start, raising an eyebrow, âI guess the plan is⌠to go fast and not crash.â
Thereâs an awkward silence in the room, the journalist blinking at you as if he didnât hear you correctly. Lando makes a noise thatâs somewhere between a laugh and a cough, struggling to contain himself as you sit there, completely straight-faced.
âAnd the tire strategy?â the moderator presses, trying to steer things back into something vaguely professional.
âUse them until they wear out, I suppose.â You lean back in your chair, mimicking Maxâs posture, crossing your legs casually as if youâve just given a perfectly reasonable answer. Max looks at you with a cocky and proud smile, you discretely wink at him.
"Max, can you elaborate on your car's performance today?" another reporter tries.
Max tilts his head, considering for a moment. "It went forward when I pushed the pedal, and stopped when I hit the brakes. Very efficient, really."
You can't help but smirk at his response, and you notice Lando has given up on maintaining composure, his shoulders shaking with silent laughter.
The moderator, looking increasingly uncomfortable, turns to you again. "YN, how do you feel about potentially challenging your teammate for position tomorrow?"
You lean forward, adopting a serious expression. "Well, I've been told it's important to keep things clean on track. Wouldn't want to use any⌠inappropriate maneuvers."
"Absolutely. We're all about clean racing now. Very family-friendly." Max adds
The reporters exchange glances, clearly unsure how to handle this united front of sarcasm and vague responses. Lando, meanwhile, has resorted to covering his face with his hands, his shoulders visibly shaking with suppressed laughter.
As the press conference draws to a close, you and Max stand up together, your body language mirroring each other's. Before leaving, you turn to the room with a final statement:
"Just want to thank everyone for their thoughtful questions today. This has been a very enlightening experience. Almost as enlightening as some recent FIA decisions."
As you exit the room, hand in hand with Max, you can hear the burst of chatter from the journalists behind you, no doubt trying to decipher the subtext of your responses. Lando catches up with you in the hallway, finally letting out the laugh he's been holding in.
"You two are unbelievable," he wheezes, wiping tears from his eyes. "I thought I was going to lose it in there!"
Max grins, his earlier tension now replaced with a sense of satisfaction. "Well, we aim to entertain," he says, giving your hand a squeeze.
#max verstappen x reader#max verstappen fanfiction#max verstappen imagine#max verstappen story#max verstappen fluff#max verstappen fic#mv1 x reader#f1 x reader#f1 fanfiction#formula 1 x reader#formula 1 fanfiction#max verstappen#f1 grid x reader#harrysfolklore#max verstappen smut#mv1 fic#max verstappen x you#formula 1 imagine#max verstappen smau#f1 smau
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Pollen and Pheromones
Kinktober Day 13: Sex Pollen
Male Alpha Yandere x Gender Neutral Omega Reader CW: Noncon, sex pollen, aphrodisiac, pheromones, knotting, biting, claiming bite, stranded, spaceship crash, sci-fi, outer space, alien planet, a/b/o dynamics, bigotry/prejudice against omegas, rivalry, breeding, general yandere behavior, tsundere, betrayal Word Count: 1.6k (Enjoy this kinktober meal I have prepared <3)
"Star log: This is Pilot 2418 currently operating vessel Starlion: Orion. I am currently on route to pass the threshold of our galaxy in less than five minutes."
You were a shuttle pilot, one of the Exploration Guild's best. Ever since humanity had achieved interplanetary travel, they had sought to extend themselves ever further. With the new drift-space drives, that dream was now a reality.
They were only currently suited for small 1 to 2 man shuttlecraft, and only a couple such craft had been made. Two different ones had been commissioned through the guild, with both pilots competing to see who could exit the Milky Way first. The new drive could only be used in bursts to prevent overloading, so the journey had still taken a few months. But it seemed like you were about to succeed. Then you could make a U-turn and start drift-jumping back towards the nearest station.
Since you were an omega, this was a great achievement, a notice to the universe that your kind could do whatever betas and alphas could. You would be able to help stamp out the lingering bigotry and inspire others all with one action.
You were just about to cross the finish line!
Suddenly, your opponent, Tetsunori, came out of drift-space behind you. He had been your long-time rival, with both of you being about equally skilled.
But this was unacceptable to him as he was an alpha and held to the knothead mindset that an omega's place was bouncing on an alpha's prick or maybe in a teaching or nursing job.
You weren't worried, though. You had a solid lead. There was no way he could close the gap.
You rolled your eyes at the incoming transmission.
"Why don't you just give up now? If you surrender nicely, I'll let you celebrate my victory by letting you keep my knot warm!"
The temptation to reply was too great.
"Ha! You may be good at navigating the stars, but I doubt you have ever found your way into an omega."
Conversing with him hadn't distracted you or made you pause, so he growled as he switched to another plan. He fired on his tractor beam.
What the fuck, was he insane? Stooping so low to make sure you couldn't have a historic moment? You fired an equal and opposite tractor beam through his, which forced him to disengage. Something only possible because both ships were similar in size and energy output. Did he think you were some amateur?
In a desperate bid to prevent you from winning, Tetsunori rammed his shuttle into yours.
This type of bumping wasn't unheard of. It wasn't lethal if both ships were similar and had their shields up. But the bouncing was pretty strong for both parties, which is why it was a last-ditch effort. It could push you past the line, or it could bump him further. Neither of those things happened, though.
Instead, you careened right into the gravitational pull off a planet. You did everything you could to slow down and stabilize, but nothing seemed to be working.
Tetsunori sped after you in his spacecraft as he spoke into the comm link.
"I'm sorry, oh my god, I'm so sorry! I just had to be first! What omega would want to be mates with someone who they bested??"
You didn't have time for his weird ass confession and barely registered it. Your shields were still online and he had started pulsing his tractor beam to slow you down, full usage of it at such speeds could rip your ship apart, thankfully he wasn't an amateur either and knew that.
You put all available power and quickly put it into overloading the shields. You hit the emergency crash button, and two nozzles came out from the sides of the cockpit and sprayed you with a rapidly drying foam that would reduce damage to you if you got flung about the ship. Tetsunori's reckless and speedy entry into the atmosphere may have been enough to save you, but he had lost control of his vessel as well.
As you crashed, he careened away and crash-landed as well.
It was a good thing the high-tech impact reduction foam was so effective. Despite having shields, the ship was still shaken pretty badly, and the inertial dampeners weren't powerful enough to thwart damage from such a landing.
You took stock of the condition of your systems.
Almost everything was fried. You could at least scan the planet. It seemed like you had actually lucked out. In the entire galaxy planets that supported life were incredibly rare. But you had landed on one.
It seemed there were no known biological hazards present. No recognized toxins, dangerous bacteria, or viral agents. You were cleared to remove your suit. The temporary foam had started to dissolve, so it wasn't hard to remove.
The scanner also indicated there was a strong human life sign. It appeared that Tetsunori was okay.
You took the survival kit from underneath your seat as well as some beverages and rations you had procured at the last station and headed in the direction of dust and smoke in the distance.
You didn't even need the ship's scanner to tell you that the great imbecile, Tetsunori had landed there.
As you got closer, you stepped into a field of flowers that surrounded the entire crash site. You were probably still a mile away, but all around you were odd glittery silver and gold flowers.
The smell of them made you just slightly lightheaded and tingly. You realized the tiniest bit of slick was dribbling down your leg. They must be an aphrodisiac. The scanner hadn't warned you of anything in the air that was truly dangerous, so it probably wouldn't matter very much. And it really didn't. For you. As you trudged through the flowers and pollen, the effects did not get worse.
But for Tetsunori, the pollen was much stronger. When it hit his nostrils, it immediately put him into rut. Not a typical rut either, one of the ruts you see in pornos where the alpha is almost feral and unable to control their mating drive. When you came upon him, he was sitting on a piece of debris from his shit and rocking back and forth in clear distress. Through his outfit, his bulge was immediately visible.
"T-tetsunori? Uh... are you okay? D-did you get hurt in the crash?"
You took a step back when he looked up at you. His eyes were red, giving him a demonic appearance.
"The flowers, I think... they... UGH! My thoughts are all jumbled..."
He started to rub and massage his crotch desperately. He finally caught a whiff of your scent, ripe from the recent hike over to him and from being without a proper shower since your last space station stop. Not to mention the smell of the slick the aphrodisiac had coaxed out of you.
He started wildly sniffing at the air.
"Y-you smell so nice. You can help!"
You started backing away slowly.
"Uh... help with what?"
He got up and closed the difference between the two of you. Sweat had his dark hair clinging to his head. He was significantly taller and looked down at you intensely before sniffing and licking your neck with lazy broad strokes.
"S-smell so gooood. Always wanted to knot youuuu~"
You tried to push him off.
"Tetsunori! St-stop!"
You slapped, smacked, kicked, punched, and flailed, but nothing you did deterred him in the slightest.
"I'm sorry, but I fucking n-need this!"
He pinned you to the ground, clawing and biting off all your clothing until only your underwear was left, he removed it more delicately before inhaling its scent deeply and putting it in his pocket for later.
"Please don't do this, Tetsunori, PLEASE!"
He looked down at you, and it seemed like he was genuinely trying to resist before the pollen-charged rut won out.
Tetsunori unzipped his pants and let his drooling cock and full heavy balls out.
"G-gonna put all my babies in you! Have to! Have to!"
The lust-drunk alpha wasted no more time in ramming into you, an insertion that would have been more difficult had the pollen not slicked you up. Though it was still sudden and slightly painful.
"A-aaah!"
You tried to kick at him, but he growled viciously before pushing you into a mating press and slobbering all over your neck with his eager tongue.
The pollen must have increased the potency of his pheromones, or at least your susceptibility to them, because his musk was starting to cloud your thoughts.
Your grunts of pain became gasps of pleasure as your body quickly accommodated to his large size. You winced as he bit down hard on your neck to claim you. He kept right on fucking into you without skipping a beat.
He licked and kissed the lightly bleeding bite mark, some part of him remembering to comfort you despite his dominating need to fill you with cock. And by that point, the last of your resistance finally melted away.
"T-tetsunoriiiiii~" You moaned as your toes curled and body twitched in orgasm.
He growled your name in response and gave a few hard, deep thrusts before cumming as deeply as possible.
A comforting fullness filled your hole as his knot locked the two of you together. He pulled you close as he sat down so that you were in his lap facing him. The two of you caught your breath, then remained in an awkward silence until his knot deflated.
"G-got it out of your system?"
"Yeah... for the most part... sorry about that..."
You lifted yourself off of his lap, his half hard cock springing free with a lewd plopping sound.
"Well... it wasn't your fault. It was just the pollen..."
He grabbed your wrist and pulled you back into his lap, his cock ramming directly into you, then began humping.
"Well... it wasn't just the pollen..."
#yandere x reader#gender neutral reader#yandere boyfriend#male yandere#male yandere x gn reader#my ocs#yandere alpha#yandere a/b/o#omega reader#My OC Tetsunori#yandere kinktober#kinktober#kinktober 2024#tsundere to yandere#tsundere x reader#tsundere#male tsundere
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
When Johnny takes Simon to his home, and you open the door, Simon's heart stops beating. You direct that lovely smile he's fallen in love with at Johnny as you hug him and usher him inside. Simon's frozen in place, his body refusing to move, because gods, you're a fucking dream.
And then you turn your attention towards him, with ruddy cheeks and pink lips and a delicate neck he could easily wrap his hand aroundâ
"You must be Simon!" and his cock starts to stir. All you said was his name, in that angelic voice of yours, and his blood started to rush to his groin.
When you move to wrap your arms around him in an embrace, he finally breaks from his trance and returns it. Barely. It's awkwardâ one arm coming up to inelegantly pat your upper back a little too hard, and the other stiff at his side. But you seem completely unbothered, just giving him one last squeeze and step back, holding both of his arms in your dainty hands, and you say, "It's great to meet the one that keeps my Johnny safe. Now, come on in, make yourself at home!"
Simon timidly walks inside, and closes the door behind him, and utters, "Thank you for lettin' me stay here."
The joyful laughter you let out sends exquisite prickles up his spine. "He actually speaks! I'm surprised, Johnny said it took a bit for you to warm up to others," and you give another stomach-fluttering giggle. "You're welcome here any time, Simon. Now let me take you to the room you'll be staying in."
Simon has to carry his duffle bag in front of him as you lead him to the guest room to cover the throbbing erection he's got. When you leave him to freshen up, he wastes no time in pulling his jeans down and taking himself in his hand, stroking firmly. When his imagination paints a picture of you wearing an apron while cooking a meal for him, his vision blurs as he climaxes.
--
Simon knows he's atypical. He has no real decorum. He tells piss-poor dark jokes, inadvertently stares at people when he's lost in thoughtâ and since he's been here, Simon likes to shadow you.
But you don't seem to mind any of it. You laugh at his jokes, the ones Johnny never fails to scoff in disgust at, you tilt your head innocently towards him, silently questioning his intense gaze â and it's so fucking adorable that he's come to that look 8 times in the last 3 daysâ and you always ask him to reach for things that are out of your reach because you know he's around. (Johnny made a joke once, said that you're being haunted by a ghost, and the quip you replied with as you came to his defense had him dizzy.)
His favorite thing about you though, is how unafraid you are of him. You had rounded a corner and saw his skull mask for the first time, and had you been like any other woman, you would've been startled. But you hadn't beenâ If anything, you asked him if he wanted it fixed.
"I can see a couple of tears here, Simon. I can patch it up if you like."
It was so deliciously domiciliary that he counted each stitch of his mended mask with his thumb as he touched himself that night.
And then, through the thin walls of the home, he suddenly heard your dulcet moans. He quickly got up and put his skills to useâ silently crossing the living room and leaning against the wall closest to your bedroom door.
The bed repeatedly creaked and every choked moan that left you, Simon heard clearly. He hastily took out his achingly hard cock, spit on his palm, and stroked himself to the rhythm of the slapping of skin. Squeezing his eyes shut, he fucked himself to the thought of him being the one in there with you.
He has no doubt that you'd feel heavenly. Your slick cunt swallowing his turgid length, walls almost painfully tight around him. You'd beg for him to hammer into you, relentlessly, mercilessly. You'd tell him to bite the crook of your shoulder once you were about to come around his cock, and when he actually hears you reach your peak, he rhythmically tightens and loosens his grip, imitating your fluttering walls. His toes are curling inside his socks, he's so bloody closeâ
And then Simon hears your lascivious voice murmur, "Come in me."
He bites his lip so hard it splits under the pressure as he comes. Tiny, hushed whimpers seeped from behind his mouth, as hot cum spilled onto his fingers, and trickled onto the floor.
The only noise Simon can hear now is his own shaky breathâ the fun's over on both sides, it seems. He looks down, gives his softening cock one more stroke, wringing out the last of his seed, before tucking himself away, and sluggishly wiping his mess off the floor with his foot.
He quietly moves, heading back to his room, when he spots your laundry basket in the utility room.
Simon has never believed in luck until now when he's sniffing your knickers in the privacy of the guest room, and he realizes they've been worn. And by how strong the smell of you is, they've been used very recently. He felt like he won the goddamn lottery.
Wrapping it around his cock, he touches himself. Again. And when he comes, he makes sure to spurt his cum directly onto the gusset of the undergarment.
Come morning, when they're all stiff and crusted, he laments that he didn't lick them first, in a pitiful bid to experience a taste of you, before stowing them into a secret compartment in his bag. He makes a mental note to remember to do just that when he takes another pair.
Simon wordlessly makes a cup of tea later, hissing as the hot liquid comes in contact with the small wound on his lip, when Johnny approaches him.
"Mornin' LT."
A grunt is his only reply.
Johnny then shoots him a sly grin.
"Last night, ye weren't as wheesht, as quiet, as ye thought. But dinnae worry, Bonnie doesn't ken a thing."
He claps a hand on Simon's petrified shoulders. "If ye wanted a slice of the cake, ye could've just asked. I dinnae mind sharin'."
Simon gives him a borderline-demented look, puts his tea down on the counter, and clears his throat.
"When?"
#call of duty#simon ghost riley#cod mwii#johnny soap mactavish#simon ghost riley x reader#simon ghost riley smut#johnny soap mctavish x reader#simon riley x reader#simon ghost smut#cod mw2
4K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Just Roommates
Male OC x Ryujin
Tags: 30k, smut, cheating, oral, creampie
The story is not ours, we alternate the original story to match our desired settings.
âI donât understand why we canât just get our own place,â muttered Ryujin, gazing scornfully at the stack of lease renewal papers scattered atop the kitchen counter.
She loathed the idea of her and her boyfriend, Tae, signing away an additional year of their lives in the apartment they shared with his buddy from college.
âYou know I canât stand being around that arrogant piece of shit anymore...â
âI know you donât like him, but Junho is my best friend, and itâs just unrealistic for us to try and afford a place on our own right now, babe,â Tae replied. âJust one more year. By then we should have enough saved up to move out on our own, and youâll have your degree. We just have to make this small sacrifice for our future, and besides, I know youâll warm up to him if you give him a chance,â he added.
âI seriously doubt that,â Ryujin said through her frown.
Her boyfriendâs logic was sound though, and she couldnât deny it was the sensible choice. She had moved in with the two men only a month prior, and she and Tae were barely earning enough to afford the shared living space they currently had. An additional year of hardship would end with her finally achieving her bachelorâs degree, at which point she could start her career and be stable enough to gain more independence.
Tae studied Ryujin as she contemplated his reasoning. He handed her a pen, and to his relief, she took it and began adding her signature to the many pages.
âThanks, babe. I know itâs not ideal, but I really appreciate your understanding.â
âYeah, yeah... But we should really establish some new rules around here. Iâm getting sick and tired of Junho bringing random slutsâ home and disturbing our peace.â Ryujin took the opportunity to try and gain a little more control in the household.
Junho treated the place like he owned it, and Tae always turned a blind eye, allowing his friend to walk all over him. It was one of several reasons why Ryujin despised living with their roommate.
âThatâs fair... Iâll talk to him,â Tae responded, now adding his signature to the document. He didnât enjoy the thought of confronting Junho about his habits, and secretly wished his girlfriend was a little more easy-going.
Just then, the apartment door swung open, and Junho strolled in with his usual confident gait and cocky smile.
âHey, roomies!â
His eyes fell to the freshly inked lease agreement. âOooh, so we made up our minds, did we?â The tall, well-dressed man shuffled in between the couple and picked up the pen to seal the deal. Ryujin had to stop herself from ripping up the papers on the spot.
âYup. One more year together,â Tae answered, grinning.
âWell this calls for a drink, doesnât it?â Junho announced rhetorically, trading glances with each of them as he added his name to the many pages. Tae grabbed a bottle of vodka and some glasses, and poured the three of them a shot.
After filling in the last blank, and slamming the pen down, Junho raised his glass. âTo another fun year!â The trio drank their shots, one more reluctantly than the others, and Junho continued speaking. âI mean, I could afford this place on my own, but itâs way more fun having you guys around! Plus we all save a ton of cash this way.â
Ryujin visibly grimaced. The manâs arrogance never failed to disgust her. âBefore you get too carried away, I think we should discuss some things,â she said.
Both men turned to her, Tae looking nervous. âI think you should treat Tae and I with a little more respect. We live here too, and itâs not fair that youâre constantly coming home really late with different women, not giving us a heads up, and then being... unreasonably loud all night.â
Junho remained silent for a few seconds, seemingly letting her words sink in. Ryujin had the brief thought that perhaps she had finally gotten through to him, until he spoke.
âJealous much?â He said sarcastically, laughing.
She crossed her arms, fuming, and he added, âCâmon... Iâm just kidding. Ryujin. I get it. Iâll be better about that. I promise.â
Junho extended his hand towards her and she rolled her eyes, but shook his hand anyway. Before releasing her from his firm grip, he murmured under his breath, âIâd rather take your sexy ass to bed any night of the week...â
Ryujin recoiled, her expression twisted in disgust. âYouâre a fucking asshole!â She raised her eyebrows at Tae, suggesting he had better defend her in some way.
âIâm sure heâs just kidding around...â The boyfriend muttered.
âOf course Iâm joking!â Junho bellowed. âI would never, ever, try to steal you from Tae here,â he said condescendingly, wrapping a muscled arm around his smaller friend and jostling him around.
âIf you were single though-â Ryujinâs icy glare interrupted him. âIâm just saying youâre a catch, okay? Learn to take a compliment!â
âIâd prefer if you never complimented me again! I donât want any of that from you,â she explained sternly. Junhoâs crude comments highlighted another major reason she disliked him. He was always stealing suggestive looks at her, and making inappropriate remarks about her appearance. She felt as if he regarded her as nothing more than a sexual object. Whenever she brought it up to her boyfriend, he would minimize it, making excuses that his friend was just playing around, and that it was just his sense of humor.
âAlright, sheesh. Sorry...â Junho apologized with a hint of sarcasm.
The trio spent the rest of the night in relative peace, sipping drinks and discussing their days at work. Ryujin felt a mild sense of relief that she had at least confronted her unwanted roommate and finally spoken up for herself. Still, she knew that there was a long year ahead of her.
â
A few weeks later, Ryujin was finishing up an assignment on her laptop when a distressed looking Tae suddenly came home, far earlier than usual. âEverything okay, babe?â She asked worriedly, noticing he was carrying a large cardboard box.
âFuck... I... Just got fired...â He replied, avoiding eye contact and dropping the container onto the kitchen counter.
âWhat!? Why?â Ryujin shoved her laptop to the side and rushed over to him.
Tae sighed heavily and began to explain, âI... Itâs so fucking stupid... I backed up some sensitive documents on my personal drive so I could work on them here one night, and apparently that violates some confidentiality policy. I guess they scanned all the computers in the office looking for that sort of thing. I tried to explain, but they wouldnât listen... HR just called me into an office and told me they had no choice but to let me go.â
Ryujin didnât know what to say or do. She had never seen her boyfriend so distraught. âCanât you just give them the files back?â She asked, knowing it probably didnât make sense.
âThey demanded I turn over the drive to them, which I did, but they said it was policy to terminate anyone who broke that rule... Fuck!â Tae was pacing around the room now, pulling at his hair. âNow any accounting job I look for is going to ask why I got fired. This is not good...â
âWeâll think of something,â she said reassuringly, not really believing her own words.
That night, the worried couple broke the bad news to their roommate.
âWell, what are you gonna do? Yâall gonna break this new lease on me already?â Junho asked, looking less calm than his usual self. âI was counting on your guysâ portion so I could invest more.â
âI donât see any other option. Thereâs no way weâll be able to afford rent right now. Any extra money we had has gone towards Ryujinâs student loans...â Tae lamented.
Junho fell silent for a minute or so, his eyes darting back and forth, when an idea occurred to him. âTell you what, Iâll cover your share of the rent until you get a new job.â
âHuh? No... No, you canât do that,â Tae brushed off his friendâs proposition.
âI can. Iâd rather just front you the money for a bit than deal with trying to find a new roommate. Way too much of a hassle,â Junho argued.
âBro, I appreciate the offer, but thatâs asking way too much of you...I donât even know how long it will take me to land another job.â
âIâm sure it wonât take that long. Besides, where would you even go? Everywhere remotely close to Ryujinâs school is just as expensive if not more, and where would you get the cash for a new security deposit and all that shit? As far as I can tell your options are here or the streets.â
Junhoâs words hit both of them hard. They hadnât even had the time to consider how desperate their situation was. He was right. As of right then, they didnât have enough money to live anywhere, let alone even be approved as tenants with their current situation. Ryujin chimed in first, âI could try to find a part time job or something...â
âNo, your focus is still getting your degree. I donât want this to fuck up our future. Plus, that wouldnât be enough income anyway,â Tae replied. âI guess... since thereâs no other option... Weâll have to take you up on your offer, Bro. Iâll pay you back when I can of course.â
âDonât worry about the money. You guys can start paying me back right away, in fact,â Junho said, grinning smugly. âHear me out... You wonât owe me a dime for the rent I cover while youâre out of work, but... Ryujin has to sleep in my bed three nights a week.â
The room fell dead silent, the couple doubting they had heard him correctly. Tae simply muttered, âWhat?â
Ryujin felt her blood boiling, and stammered, âYou must be fucking joking...â
Junho chimed in again before they could process his ridiculous demand any further. âIâm not joking, and before you get any ideas, itâs not a sexual thing at all... I would be spending a great deal of cash to help you guys out, and I would need something big in return that makes me feel like itâs worth it-â
âNot sexual my ass! What in the hell are you talking about?â Ryujin interrupted, her face bright crimson. She shot a glance at her boyfriend, shocked he wasnât more outraged.
âWell, for one, I just prefer having a womanâs company. It helps me sleep better, but itâs getting a little tiresome having to go on all these dates just to find a new bed buddy. They always want a relationship, and Iâm not interested, so I have to go out and find someone else all over again. Itâs expensive too, and since Iâll be a lot shorter on cash in the near future, having Ryujin around will make that whole situation a lot easier on me,â Junho explained calmly.
â...Sleeping buddy? You expect us to believe that!?â Ryujin challenged him. âThereâs a lot more than sleeping going on in there, which we are forced to listen to all the time by the way.â
âSure, we usually end up fucking, but my point is that I want a break from all that without having to sleep alone every night.â Junho continued the level-headed explanation of his terms, despite the mortified look on his roommatesâ faces. âPlus, it bothers me that you hate me so much, and this will give us some time to get better acquainted. Itâs honestly a great deal for you guys. Just think it over, and let me know.â With that, he turned for his bedroom and left the dumbfounded couple standing awkwardly in silence.
âSo... weâre obviously not doing that,â Ryujin said finally.
âYeah, no way. Weâll explore our options more tomorrow,â Tae agreed.
âWhy didnât you say more? You just stood there while he suggested the most degrading thing! Some fucking best friend you got there...â
âI know... Iâm sorry... I mean it is a lot of money. He just wants us to take it seriously I guess-â
âAre you actually defending that creep? What part of how weâre handling this isnât fucking serious? To suggest that we pay him back like... ugh... like Iâm some fucking whore...â
âLetâs just go to bed. Weâll figure something else out.â Tae muttered, feeling overwhelmed.
âI canât believe you. Both of you!â The young girlfriend yelled in anger and stormed off towards her bedroom, slamming the door.
â
The next week or so was nothing short of problematic for the young couple. They did not discuss the preposterous proposition their roommate had made, and focused all of their energy on finding a solution. Tae and Ryujin spent hours browsing apartments and rooms to rent, but no matter how they crunched the numbers, there was simply no way they could afford to sustain themselves. The cost of rent had increased drastically in the entire region, and every listing they browsed left them feeling more desperate.
Ryujin avoided Junho entirely. The fact that he had referred to her as an object for trade made her skin crawl, and yet his twisted deal clawed at the back of her mind. The notion that all of their financial troubles could be washed away in the blink of an eye was becoming harder to ignore as the situation worsened.
Each passing day, she considered the offer a little more seriously, rationalizing away the absurdity of it.
One night, the couple lay in bed after a failed attempt to have sex. The dire circumstances had drained Tae of his libido, and his desire to share some shred of pleasure with Ryujin proved impossible. On the verge of tears, he whimpered, âWhat are we gonna do...â
Ryujin felt a pit in her stomach. They couldnât go on living like this. She felt a sudden surge of guilt, knowing that she could end their suffering at any time. After an exasperated sigh, she mumbled, âWhat if... we just try it out... for one night...â
âNo... There has to be another way...â Tae replied.
âBut there isnât. We just need more time. Iâm willing to give it a try... As long as he plays by my rules.â
âAre you sure, babe?â
âUgh... no... but Iâll do it for us. It would probably just be a few times until you find another job after all, right?â
âRight. I love you.â
âI love you too. Goodnight.â Ryujin curled up and tried to sleep, but the knowledge of what they had just agreed to had tied her stomach into knots.
â
The following day, after hours of unsuccessful job and apartment hunting, the couple were a bundle of nerves as they waited for Junho to get home from work. When the moment finally came, he could tell immediately that there was an abnormal energy in the air.
âWhatâs going on guys? Donât tell me you found a new place...â
Tae cleared his throat. âEhm... No... We... were talking, and...â
He didnât need to finish for Junho to figure it out. His friendâs awkward speech pattern and Ryujinâs scornful body language made it quite clear.
âYouâre agreeing to the deal?â Junho asked, grinning.
âYeah...â Tae muttered.
âBut just a trial! If you can prove to me that youâll be a gentleman through this, and not your usual...â Ryujin had to stop herself from hurling one of several cutting insults that were on the tip of her tongue, â...self... Then maybe this can work out.â
âI will be the perfect, platonic roommate. I promise. Letâs drink to it!â Junho hurried to pour shots, and the three of them did their best to enjoy the evening. After several rounds of drinks and some light-hearted discussion, the group was about ready to call it a night. No one had made any mention of the impending strangeness that would occur when they eventually decided to go to bed, but the time had come.
Ryujin was feeling fairly intoxicated as she kissed her boyfriend goodnight. It was the strangest feeling knowing they were going into separate rooms, but she had made up her mind and wasnât going to turn back now. Surprisingly, Junho had actually been tolerable for the past couple of hours. She knew he couldnât have actually changed that quickly, but to see him at least making an effort was a good start. After reluctantly parting ways with Tae, Ryujin followed her roommate to his doorway.
âYouâre wearing that to bed?â Junho asked, examining her outfit.
She hadnât even thought about it. She would normally just strip down to her underwear or throw on a baggy t-shirt with nothing underneath before getting under the covers. Neither of those options would be suitable now. âDamn. Um... be right back.â She trotted to her own room, changed into some gym shorts and a tank top, and gave Tae another kiss before returning to Junho across the apartment. He was in the same spot, and held the door open for her to pass through.
âI know how to open a door you know...â She muttered.
âPerfect gentleman, remember?â Junho responded, chuckling.
Ryujin entered the room and noticed right away that it smelled different than hers. Some sort of foreign, masculine scent hung in the air, but it wasnât necessarily unpleasant. She realized she had never actually been inside his space before. The next thing she noticed was that the dwelling was surprisingly clean and tidy. She had figured a single guy like him would have been living more or less like a slob, as Tae had before she moved in.
âWhich side is mine?â She asked, motioning towards the bed.
âI sleep on the side with the door so I can protect you if anything goes wrong,â he jested.
Ryujin rolled her eyes and sat at the far edge of the bed, which was the third discovery to subvert her expectations. The mattress seemed exceedingly comfortable, and she pressed it a few times with the palm of her hands to examine it.
âGood stuff, right?â He asked, watching her with a cocky smile.
âNot gonna lie,â she said, laying on her back and wiggling into the cushiony material a bit, âThis might be the comfiest bed Iâve ever felt.â
âWell I have expensive taste,â Junho bragged. âGlad you like it though,â he added.
âWhatever... This is so fucking weird. Is it morning yet?â Ryujin complained.
âNot even close,â he answered wickedly.
âThis whole thing was just a ploy to get under my skin, wasnât it?â She asked.
âMaybe a little... Why do you hate me so much, anyway?â He asked, still smiling.
âIf you donât understand that by now, I donât see the point of getting into it,â she snapped.
âFair enough,â Junho said simply. He began unbuttoning his shirt and pulled it off of his torso.
âDude, canât you change in the closet or something?â Ryujin chided.
âWhat? Iâm not getting naked or anything,â he stated as he pulled his pants down.
Ryujin looked away. âWhat the fuck, Junho.â
âRelaaax. I always sleep in my boxers. No big deal.â
Ryujin glanced at him again. She hated to admit it even to herself, but the man was in incredible shape. She could see how he was able to pick up women so consistently. If he wasnât such a prick he- she shook the thought away and complained again, âCanât you at least put a shirt on?â
âMy room, my rules. By the way, I do take tips,â he joked, laughing at himself.
âYouâre the worst...â Ryujin turned to her side, away from him, and decided that the best way to move forward was just to fall asleep as soon as possible. The bed shuffled a bit as he crawled into it next to her, but that was the last disturbance of the night.
â
The sun cast its rays through the blinds and onto Ryujinâs eyes, which she made no attempt to open yet. In her semi-awake state, she felt her boyfriend pressed up against her backside, with his hand on her hip. She then felt the unmistakable bulge of his hard cock against her ass. Her pussy was wet and craving attention. She had been abnormally horny lately due to the stresses of life getting in the way of their sex life. Ryujin slowly rocked her ass back and forth along his hardness, hoping to stir him awake and finally share a long awaited steamy sex session.
She reached back to free his erection and guide it into her dripping slit. It would be so hot for him to wake up inside of me, she thought. Her slender hand dipped into his waistband and wrapped around his shaft. She froze. Whatever she was holding felt foreign, and it was far too big to be Taeâs dick. Reality came rushing back to her and her eyes snapped open. This wasnât her room; this wasnât her bed; and the huge cock in her hand belonged to Junho.
Ryujin gasped audibly and quickly pulled her hand away from him. She turned to confirm, to her horror, that it was in fact Junho that she was snuggled up against. He appeared to be fast asleep, which was a relief. She carefully rolled away from him, taking care not to wake him. She realized she had somehow ended up on his side of the bed, a further incriminating detail she would be horrified for him to discover. Her eyes ran down his broad chest and chiseled abs, landing on his massive dick, which was still rock hard and now sticking out of his boxers. Her gaze lingered on it for several seconds. It didnât even seem real. She had the thought to tuck it back into his underwear for a brief moment, to cover up the rest of the evidence of her mistake. Realizing how unnecessary that would be, she left the bed and exited the room.
As the scorching water of the shower poured over her, Ryujin tried to get the vision of her roommateâs naked body out of her mind. Her pussy ached, begging to be touched, but she would not allow herself to succumb to the temptation. Especially not with the image of Junhoâs big cock so fresh in her thoughts. She couldnât believe she had actually touched the thing, and had never imagined they could get that large. âIt was an accident. I didnât do anything wrong...â She repeated the phrase to herself as she dried off.
Ryujin returned to her own bedroom to find Tae was still asleep. She dropped her towel and climbed on top of him. She took his soft dick in her hands and tried to coax it to life. She desperately needed to get the sexual urges out of her system.
âGood morning, babe. Rise and shine,â she said sweetly.
Tae stirred finally and greeted his naked girlfriend. âHow was your night?â He asked right away. She continued to fondle him, but his cock remained as limp as ever.
âIt was fine... Weird, but fine,â she answered simply.
âHe didnât do anything... questionable?â Tae inquired.
âNo... We just went to sleep. Other than feeling strange to be in the wrong bed, it was a pretty uneventful night overall.â She had decided to keep her awkward mistake to herself. It was too embarrassing and wasnât worth bringing up since it was just an accident on her part.
âWell thatâs good, I guess. Um... Sorry babe. Iâm just not feeling it right now,â He muttered, glancing at his softness in her hands.
âThatâs okay...â Ryujin tried to hide her disappointment. She had hoped that his sex drive would have improved now that their financial burdens were taken care of, but it made sense to her that it could take some time.
Unfortunately for her, Taeâs libido did not improve much over the next week. He always found some excuse to explain why it wasnât the right time. Hoping it would improve the situation, Ryujin did not pressure him to look for work. It became apparent that he had stopped searching, but she reasoned that a break was probably healthy after all of the stress they had gone through. A little vacation never hurt anyone, she reminded herself as she observed him settling on the couch and clutching a video game controller.
As for the nights spent in Junhoâs room, Ryujin was adjusting to the new routine. Luckily, nothing unsavory had happened since that first confusing morning in his bed. He would verbally tease her and find little ways to press her buttons, but she always had an insult ready to fire back at him. An onlooker might have called it flirting, but she was convinced that she still hated his guts.
Overall, the arrangement was going smoother than she had expected. In fact, Ryujin was surprised to find that she actually slept wonderfully in his luxurious, comfortable bed, and always woke up quite refreshed. Every morning though, she would find that she had soaked through her underwear and would sneak out in shame before Junho awoke. Her sexual appetite had not been addressed and her body was becoming increasingly difficult to ignore. Ryujin chalked it up to the recent lull in her and Taeâs sex life, but there was clearly a pattern emerging where her most lust-crazed mornings were in Junhoâs bed.
One morning in particular, she noticed with dread that she had somehow become draped over him during the night, her cheek against his warm chest and her bare thigh across his crotch. She felt the familiar wetness between her legs and an unfamiliar hardness beneath her. Ryujin glanced down to find that Junhoâs sizable morning wood had escaped his boxers and was trapped under her inner thigh, just inches away from her barely-clothed pussy. She cursed herself for unconsciously ending up in a dicey position with him again. She didnât move, just laying still to collect her thoughts for a moment. His arm was on her, running down the length of her torso with his fingers resting on her ass. It would be difficult to move at all without waking him.
Ryujinâs cunt was on fire, and it took every ounce of self-control to stop herself from giving into the urge to grind against him. The thick mushroom tip of his cock seemed to stare at her, poking out from the soft skin of her upper leg. It looked so plump and juicy, at least twice the size of her boyfriendâs, and she couldnât help but imagine how it might feel inside of her. If it were in any way possible to ensure he would remain asleep, Ryujin wasnât sure sheâd be able to resist guiding Junhoâs hard dick into her dripping wet pussy. She had never felt so tempted in her life.
Finally, after several minutes of suppression, she managed to carefully squirm out of his embrace and free herself of the potential embarrassment of being discovered cuddling so intimately. To her relief, Junho didnât stir in the slightest as she maneuvered her body off of his. He was seemingly out cold. Unburdened of her weight, his big cock stood tall, pointing straight at the ceiling.
Subconsciously, Ryujinâs hand had found its way down her shorts, and she lightly stroked her aching pussy while gawking at the exposed man. The pleasure hit her in an instant, her impossibly needy sex finally getting some stimulation. Before she fully realized what she was doing, the young girlfriend was firmly rubbing her clit next to her sleeping roommate.
Junhoâs huge erection remained fully inflated throughout the duration of her sneaky self-indulgence, and she was fixated on it. She made a conscious effort not to lust over the annoying man beside her, but her mind wouldnât let her ignore the physical specimen. That fat fucking cock was exactly what her body had been craving for weeks now, and the raw sight of it fueled her burgeoning climax.
Ryujinâs orgasm hit her hard. Her mouth hung open while she quivered on the bed for a solid minute. When the flood of endorphins pummeling her brain finally slowed, she felt a mix of satisfaction and disgust. It bothered her that she had given in to her bodyâs urges, especially because Junho had been the focal point. She hated him and his alluring cock for breaking her will. As silly and illogical as the thought was, she felt better about what sheâd just done by shifting the blame. It was the damn boys that got her into this situation, and thus all of this was their fault. Ryujin took one last look at the nude man and quietly left the bedroom.
A smug grin spread across Junhoâs face as he listened to her retreating footsteps. He had been awake the entire time, sneaking quick glances at Ryujinâs masturbation session. He stroked his dick to the thought of her sexy body writhing around on his sheets, knowing he now had the upper hand.
â
The following âJunho nightâ, as she began calling them, had Ryujin feeling more anxious than usual. She couldnât control the movements her body made while sleeping, which made her nervous. She couldnât bear the thought of him waking up first and finding her snuggled up against him. If he were to somehow discover how wet she was, he would never shut up about it. She tried not to worry about all of that as she got onto the far end of his bed and curled up. They traded a few sarcastic remarks while he stripped off his clothes, as usual, and the room fell silent.
âUh... Ryujin?â Junho asked softly.
âWhat?â She asked, already rolling her eyes in anticipation of whatever he was about to say.
âJust thought I should mention. Iâve been like... extra horny recently. So, if I happen to have a big boner in the morning or something, I donât want you to freak out,â he explained.
Ryujin scoffed at him. âWhatever man. Just keep it away from me.â
As Ryujin closed her eyes and tried to sleep, she began hearing a repetitive rubbing sound behind her. When it didnât stop after several seconds, she turned to look at Junhoâs side of the bed.
âDude, what the hell is-â
The words caught in her throat as she saw that Junho had removed his underwear and was openly jerking off right in front of her.
âWhat the fuck!?â She shouted, bewildered by his actions.
âShhhh!â He responded, looking at her sternly while his hand continued to pump up and down.
âAre you fucking kidding me!?â Ryujin threw the blanket off of her, readying herself to storm out of the room.
âI told you I was abnormally horny...â
âWell, take it to the bathroom or something!â She demanded, fuming.
âOh, so youâre allowed to masturbate in here, but Iâm not?â Junho sneered accusingly.
âI- What are you talking about?â Ryujin asked defensively, feeling her stomach drop.
âDonât play dumb. I saw you the other morning going to town on your little cunt. Right there where you are now,â he accused her.
âWhat!? Thatâs bullshit!â She argued, knowing it was hopeless.
âWe both know it isnât. But hey, itâs fine. You have my permission to pleasure yourself in here as much as you want, just donât expect me to play by a different set of rules. Fair is fair.â
Ryujin moved to get off of the bed. She was humiliated and needed to get away from him. âWhere are you going?â Junho asked, still stroking himself with a steady rhythm. When she didnât answer him, he added, âIf you leave, Iâll tell Tae everything.â She froze. âAbout how his not-so innocent girlfriend couldnât keep her body to herself, and got so worked up over the sight of my big dick that she played with herself right in front of me.
âYou wouldnât...â Ryujin muttered, half-standing with one knee still on the sheets.
He nodded threateningly. âDonât ruin this whole arrangement just because you got a little horny. Iâm still keeping my hands to myself. Unless you want them on you...â
âI donât,â she said, defeated. She lay back down in silence, eyebrows furrowed in frustration, but continued watching him.
âGlad you decided to stay. Gotta admit Iâd miss my favorite sleeping buddy if you called this deal off,â Junho teased.
âWhen I call it off,â she corrected him. âThis is just a short term thing.â
âWell, I guess we better enjoy it while it lasts, right?â
âYouâre certainly enjoying yourself...â She grumbled.
âYou could be too...â He suggested.
âYou wish,â she said dismissively, trying to ignore the growing heat between her thighs.
Junho was surprised that she still hadnât looked away. He was having a great deal of fun taunting her while he openly played with himself. âSo what do you think?â
âHuh?â
âHow do I measure up?â He glanced at his cock, and then back at her.
âPfft. Youâre disgusting,â Ryujin muttered. She shuffled a bit as if to turn away from him, but she couldnât stop herself from looking back at his performance.
âCâmon. You canât deny Iâm packing an impressive instrument here,â he teased.
âYou seriously think that just cause you wag your big dick around Iâm going to instantly drop my panties?â
âSo you do admit that itâs big,â Junho retorted confidently.
Her face flushed crimson. âUgh... Youâre so annoying...â She flopped over onto her side, forcing herself to tear her eyes away from the scene.
âRyujin...â
âWhat now?â
âIâm gonna cum. So hard,â he grunted.
She reluctantly turned to Junho again, just in time to see his thick cock jump and spurt a lengthy rope of semen straight into the air. Another creamy strand of his fluid shot out, and then another, each of them reaching preposterous heights before landing on his toned belly. Ryujin watched in amazement as her roommate ejaculated with more force and volume than she wouldâve considered possible. On the surface she looked appalled to witness it, but her pussy burned with desire at the erotic showing.
âFuck...â She murmured, lost for words and involuntarily squeezing her thighs together...
Junho cleaned himself off and settled into the bed. âNight,â he said smugly. He turned off the lamp and didnât say another word to her.
Ryujinâs mind was racing. She couldnât believe what had just taken place. How did things escalate so quickly? She just witnessed the man she despised jerk himself off to completion, and it left her extremely aroused, despite how badly she wanted to be disgusted. Her pussy was soaking wet and practically screaming at her to touch it. She tossed and turned for several minutes before ultimately losing the internal battle. Very quietly, her hand dipped into her shorts and she pressed her fingers into her aching entrance. For the second time that week, a conflicted Ryujin shamefully pleasured herself to orgasm in Junhoâs bed.
â
The new routine had been established, and over the next several nights while they were together, Junho would strip completely naked and masturbate beside her. Ryujin would always act appalled, and call him out for being a pig, but sheâd watch him anyway with a disapproving look. Eventually, she got comfortable enough to secretly touch herself under the blanket while he stroked one out, but she always waited until he was asleep to make herself cum. She couldnât risk him knowing the effect he was having on her. She always came so hard after teasing herself while watching him, and privately began looking forward to her âJunho nightsâ, knowing the pleasure that would ensue.
One evening, as he fished his half-erect cock from his underwear, she asked him, âDo you do this every single night?â
He replied, âHonestly, only when youâre here.â
âGross.â She scoffed.
âYouâre so fucking hot, Ryujin. Just knowing youâre in my bed drives me crazy. Itâs the only thing I can do to control myself,â he explained earnestly.
âWell, youâre disgusting, and you canât have me,â she muttered, suppressing a grin. The rare compliment threw her off, and she couldnât deny that it was flattering to know how intensely he lusted after her. It was a bit of a power trip realizing that she was off limits, yet so desirable that he had to beat off every time she was around.
Junho snickered. He knew it was just a matter of time before her will would shatter. âThatâs fine. Iâll settle for my thoughts for now.â
âI can only imagine the perverted shit you conjure up in that thick skull of yours,â Ryujin said bitingly.
âOh, I think youâd love it.â
âTry me.â Ryujin regretted the encouragement the second it left her lips. Her hidden lust had gotten the better of her.
Junho flashed a bright smile. âWell, speaking of trying you... I could, for instance, crawl between your legs right now and eat your little pussy until you were screaming for me to fuck you.â
His sudden directness spurred a small shockwave in her gut and her nipples hardened. âPfft! You wouldnât dare. You know this arrangement is over the minute you lay a finger on me, you ass.â
âItâs just a fantasy. Relax,â he replied calmly, still slowly stroking himself. âIf that actually were to happen though... Iâm positive you wouldnât stop me.â Junhoâs arrogance was making her blood boil, but her body was reacting to his dirty imagery. âBelieve me though. I have a skilled tongue, and youâd be addicted to it in no time.â
âFuck off. You are so damn full of yourself itâs sickening,â Ryujin remarked with her most disapproving expression. She could feel her pussy moistening by the second.
He noted that she hadnât told him to stop yet. âOf course, that would just be the appetizer. Just a little warm up for the main event. Next, I would slowly kiss my way up your body until you felt this fat cock prod your slick entrance. Thatâs when the begging would really start...â
Ryujinâs cunt was burning now, and it took every ounce of self-control to stop herself from attending to it. She couldnât help a swift glance at his engorged dick, picturing its considerable size stretching her open. She became aware that she was biting her lower lip, and lashed out in embarrassment. âBegging you to leave me the fuck alone, you creep!â
âYou have no clue what youâre missing. I know exactly how to please a sexy woman like you. Iâd have you creaming all over my big cock the entire night. One experience with a real man like me would blow your innocent little mind. Then Iâd blow my thick load deep inside of you and seal the deal...â As he finished his sentence, Junhoâs cock throbbed and began launching the heaviest strands of sticky semen she had seen yet as he let out a deep, breathy moan.
Ryujinâs hand shot down to her panties, but she stopped herself, desperately trying to maintain control. She was soaking wet, and her thighs squirmed ever so slightly. If not for the blanket, he would easily be able to see how turned on she was. The sex-starved girlfriend felt her pussy drooling as she imagined all of that milky cum coating her insides. No one had ever cum inside of her before, and she wondered why the idea of it was suddenly so insanely hot. She was at a loss for words, and mindlessly said, âYouâre gross.â
The look of deep conflict on Ryujinâs face was clearly apparent to Junho, who was studying her reaction carefully as his climax ran its course. âGo ahead. Ryujin. I wonât tell...â
âShut up.â She hated him for putting her in this position, but her body wanted to give in so badly.
âTouch yourself. I know you need it,â he persisted.
âI do not.â Ryujin lied. Even as she said it, her hand was sliding back down her torso beneath the blanket. Her body was winning the battle.
Unbeknownst to her, Junho could see the subtle movements and grinned victoriously. âDonât deny yourself. Itâs natural,â he encouraged.
âShut up.â She muttered again. Her mind was racing as her fingers dipped into her underwear and finally made contact with her aching pussy. A spark of ecstasy rippled through her instantly, her brain pleading her to continue.
Junho watched as her hardened expression shifted slightly, revealing that her determination had finally broken. âThatâs it... God you look hot.â
Ryujin wanted her arrogant roommate to say more dirty things to her. She despised that this was happening, but she was too far in now as she furiously rubbed her drenched cunt. âYou donât know anything...â
âDonât be ashamed. Weâre friends here.â
âNo, weâre not. Ugh. I fucking hate you...â She said through clenched teeth. The pleasure was ramping up significantly, and her eyes drifted down to Junhoâs shiny member. It had deflated slightly, but was still quite engorged as it lay across his abs, surrounded with his splattered semen. â...and your stupid big cock,â she added, practically whimpering.
âIâm going to fuck you with this stupid big cock one day,â Junho stated boldly.
âNnooghh... No you arenât...â Ryujin couldnât believe she was getting off to his completely inappropriate threats. She could feel a powerful orgasm brewing.
âYes I will. You will be my personal cum slut, and you will join me in bed every single night so I can give your needy little pussy all the attention itâs been craving.â
âFuck. Fuck. FUCK!â Ryujin yelped far louder than she intended as her climax overwhelmed her. All control over her body slipped right through her fingers as her thighs clamped tightly together and she trembled on the sheets. Soft moans escaped her lips as visions of Junho sexually dominating her flashed through her mind. The intensity of her orgasm completely blindsided her, and it seemed to last minutes. As the pleasure finally waned, she opened her eyes to see her roommateâs shit eating grin.
âWell that was ridiculously sexy. Now I need to take care of this again,â he said, looking down at his revitalized erection. âWanna help me out?â
âThis never happened!â Ryujin flipped onto her side, facing away from him, and pulled the blanket tightly into her. She shut her eyes and tried to block out the shame that was taking hold of her. She had just openly pleasured herself right next to the man she supposedly loathed more than anyone else. Worse still, she had done it while he described how he was going to fuck her and make her his slut, all behind her boyfriendâs back. The situation had gotten so completely out of control that it didnât even feel real. Maybe it was a dream, she thought. She let the hopeful idea live in her mind as she drifted off to sleep, the rhythmic sounds of Junho beating his meat again behind her.
The next couple of days proved to be quite awkward for Ryujin, and she avoided her roommate as much as possible. Everytime she caught a glimpse of him, she was reminded of what had transpired. The dirty, degrading things he had said to her swirled around in her head intrusively. No matter what she did to take her mind off of things, she felt insatiably horny. Her boyfriend Tae was still the opposite, and seemingly couldnât be bothered with anything sexual.
On the next âJunho nightâ she was surprised when the usually boisterous man made no acknowledgment of their last session together. He still jerked off as usual, but mostly kept to himself and went to sleep without incident. She couldnât help but feel the slightest bit disappointed, but also couldnât allow herself to acknowledge it openly.
She half expected he would try to push the boundary further given the things he had mentioned. The sex-starved primitive part of her brain was so ready for him to assert himself, and her pussy drooled at the thought that she was ripe for the taking if he decided to have her. She was within armâs reach, and her inability to control her urges had already been exposed by him. There was absolutely no way she was going to stoop so low as to encourage a repeat of the last time they were in bed together though. It was better this way, she told herself, sneaking a peak at his sexual display. It was weird enough how normalized his masturbation in her proximity had become, let alone her openly joining him again.
Though she convinced herself it wasnât for him, Ryujin started wearing more revealing outfits around Junho. Sheâd pretend not to notice, but she enjoyed the ego boost whenever she caught him eye-balling her. She even began âaccidentallyâ leaving his blanket off of her torso while he jerked off, so he could have a clear view of her considerable cleavage and flat tummy. She opted to remove her bra after getting into bed, rationalizing that it was just for her comfort. It was thrilling to tease him; to know that he was probably undressing her with his eyes while he pleasured himself.
She kept up the act for the most part, scoffing at him disapprovingly when he whipped out his big cock. Sheâd pretend to scroll on her phone while watching him in her peripheral vision and lightly teasing her pussy under the safety of the blanket. Slowly but surely, she was becoming more comfortable with the ritual and the notion that it was just a bit of harmless fun. She deserved to blow off steam given how deprived she had been lately. As long as they didnât push it any further, she rationalized that she wasnât technically cheating.
Things felt different in the apartment. Tae, though normally oblivious, started to pick up on the strange vibes. His girlfriend seemed to be wearing less clothing, and he thought he saw Junho checking her out a few times. The two of them seemed to be getting along a lot better, which was a pleasant change, but also slightly concerning. He noticed some kind of electricity between his roommates, though he couldnât put his finger on it. He would ask from time to time how the sleeping agreement was going, and she would always shrug it off as âNo big dealâ.
Taeâs anxiety was worsened by the fact that Ryujin seemed generally upset with him for not trying harder to find employment, and had basically stopped trying to initiate sex after a string of several disappointing trials. They would engage in a daily argument about him being lazy and complacent to be out of work. The disheveled boyfriend inspected himself in the mirror with a frown. It had now been several weeks since he was fired, and he had really let himself go. Heâd never been as fit as his more athletic buddy, but used to at least maintain some sort of standard. He knew he had to start taking control of his life again soon, but didnât know if he had the strength to do it, especially with the embarrassment surrounding the truth of his job loss. A truth he had not disclosed to his girlfriend, and the reason why his friend was enjoying her overnight company on a regular basis.
To prove a point, Ryujin managed to land a part-time job at a retail store. It wasnât ideal, but would at least give her a bit of spending money before her classes started back up. The other plus was that she wasnât stuck in the apartment all day watching her boyfriend do nothing. The responsible thing to do would have been to put the money away and save up for a new place, freeing herself from the absurd sleeping arrangement. Instead, she spent her measly income on new clothes. Her employee discount aided in her rationalizing these purchases. What started out as picking out sensible outfits for her new job quickly devolved into acquiring skimpy workout attire and sexy nightwear. Sheâd never had the money to spend frivolously and was enjoying the opportunity to treat herself a little.
âDonât look over here.â Ryujinâs request escaped her lips despite an internal battle to keep the transparent, attention-seeking comment to herself. She carefully removed her day clothes to reveal a particularly risque nightie she had picked up that afternoon. It left little to the imagination, and her toned, but curvaceous figure was on full display.
âDamn, youâre asking for it you know...â Junho said, completely disregarding her plea for privacy as he fished for his manhood.
âI said DONâT look!â She reprimanded him, jumping under the covers for protection. âItâs for Tae. I just wanted to try it out and make sure itâs actually comfy. Donât get any ideas!â Ryujinâs focus dropped to his crotch, noting that her display had made the man instantly hard.
Junho gently ran his fingers up and down the impressive length of his shaft while studying the petite woman. The blanket had already conveniently fallen from her chest, and his eyes followed the distinct curves of her succulent tits. The thin, almost transparent fabric seemed to hug them perfectly, and he yearned to see more. He decided though, that patience was key. His conservative approach had been working wonderfully, and he needed to play his current hand a little bit longer.
âUgh. Now youâre probably thinking really inappropriate things about me. I knew I shouldnât have worn this...â Ryujin knew how obvious the act was, but her lust clouded her judgment.
âItâs pretty hot. Iâm sure Tae will enjoy it,â he replied simply, still jerking off. He watched her cute nose flare ever so slightly at his unwillingness to take the bait. She can still enjoy the show, but itâs not FOR her until she submits more. He grinned arrogantly, eventually finishing himself off and unceremoniously cleaning up.
âYouâre so obnoxious,â Ryujin muttered, turning away from him. The young girlfriend fell asleep more frustrated and unsatisfied than ever.
â
The following night, Junho returned home with an assortment of alcohol and insisted the group play drinking games together. They started with a simple card game, and within an hour each of them was feeling the effects of the potent liquid. The trio erupted in surprise and laughter as Tae flipped the final card, indicating that he would have to drink from the large glass they had been contributing to throughout the game. The intoxicated boyfriend winced as he tipped the foul mixture into his mouth, his roommates cheering him on. He managed to chug the entirety of it, gaining an applause from the group as he triumphantly slammed the glass to the table. His clumsy act caused Ryujinâs drink to fall over, splashing her clothes with the sugary substance.
She shrieked and jumped up from her chair while Tae stumbled to the kitchen for a towel. Without thinking it through, she hurriedly pulled off her top and shorts right there in the living room. Junhoâs eyebrows shot up as he drank in the sight of his sexy roommate, suddenly in nothing but an exquisite set of lacy, black underwear. She patted the material all over, checking that it was dry.
âWoah-Whatâre you doing!?â Tae stammered as he realized his girlfriend had become half naked in front of their roommate.
âWhat? I- I didnât want my new underwear to get stained!â The woman was clearly intoxicated and uninhibited. She shot Junho a glance, momentarily grasping the fact that she was exposed, and the hunger in his expression sent a tingling sensation from her nipples to her pussy.
âWell okay, but - shouldnât you cover up now?â He suggested nervously.
âI dunno... It feels kind of nice! Donât I look good?â She asked her boyfriend playfully. She was experiencing quite a thrill from showing off her body.
âYeah, you look great, but...â Tae looked over at Junho, swallowing the lump in his throat.
âI donât mind.â The roommate stated, raising his hands in a half shrug. âIf she feels comfortable, then go for it, right?â
âI guess so...â Tae slinked back into his chair, feeling defeated, and a little too drunk to form a cohesive argument.
âThanks, babe!â Ryujin giggled and kissed her boyfriend on the cheek. âSo, whatâs next?â She asked the group proudly, standing tall with her hands on her hips.
âDrink and drive?â Junho suggested. The group agreed, and filled up their drinks before taking a spot on the shared couch, the barely-clothed woman sitting between the two men, much to Taeâs dismay. The three buzzed roommates enjoyed a few rounds of competitive video game racing, while downing more drinks throughout.
The furniture was plenty large enough to accommodate all of them, yet Ryujin found herself sandwiched tightly between the much larger men. She didnât complain though, secretly enjoying the warmth of Junhoâs bare thigh against hers. His masculine scent filled her nostrils as she privately compared the two males on either side of her. One was tanned and muscled, the other pale and flabby. As more drinks filled her belly, she loosed up further, shoving her body into her roommateâs flirtatiously whenever the events of the game called for it. He even squeezed her smooth thighs a few times, which only increased her arousal.
Junho was rock hard for the entirety of the game, stealing several lengthy glances down Ryujinâs bra while the others were too immersed to notice. He had to have her, and his cock ached for release as he enjoyed the sensation of her luscious legs against his.
Eventually, the trio decided it was time to hit the sack. Ryujin, stumbling slightly, followed her tall roommate to his room, leaning on him for stability.
âBabe...â Tae whined, looking at her accusingly. âItâs an us night. Youâre going the wrong way...â He had already witnessed the pair flirting pretty consistently throughout the evening, and seeing his girlâs hand wrapped around his friendâs large bicep filled him with jealousy.
âOh! Are you sure?â She asked, feeling embarrassed.
âYeah... You slept in there last night, remember?â He was right, and she shamefully let go of the muscled arm.
âMy bad... I guess Iâm a little more tipsy than I thought...â She couldnât show it, but the young girlfriend was disappointed. She was intensely horny, and had been looking forward to her routine of playing with her pussy while pretending to be disinterested in Junhoâs big cock. She knew Tae wouldnât be up for anything sexual.
âHang on. How about one more race?â Junho asked mischievously, staring his friend down. Heâd hoped the boyfriend had become too drunk to notice the mistake, and now had to think on his feet. Tae simply shook his head, knowing where this was going. The confident man added, âIf I win, I get a bonus Ryujin night tonight; but If I lose, we change the arrangement to only once per week instead of three, permanently.â His offer hung in the air for several seconds while the room contemplated.
âWhatâs the point even? Itâs not like you get to - to...â Tae couldnât bring himself to say it out loud, but the implication was understood. He tried to shake away the painful thought of the man taking advantage of his girlfriend.
âI know dude. Itâs not about that,â Junho said reassuringly.
âItâs just one last silly bet to end the night on. I want to feel like I won a prize, you know?â
âI dunno...â Tae muttered sheepishly, looking towards Ryujin to gauge her reaction. She just stood there silently, waiting to see how it would play out. His mind was a swirling mix of conflicting thoughts. He should just outright refuse, but if he won, then he would have a lot more of her to himself. He did feel he was the better gamer, and the alcohol gave him just enough confidence to weakly agree. âFine... letâs do it.â
Ryujinâs heart lept in her chest as the events unfolded in front of her. She felt objectified; a bargaining chip to be turned over to the victor. It reminded her of the origin of the agreement that now felt like it happened so long ago. Things were different now, and instead of feeling disgusted, she found the whole ordeal to be an incredible turn on. She stood there in her skimpy underwear, waiting with great anticipation for the two males to decide who got to claim her for the night. She secretly hoped it would be her big dicked roommate.
The race was on, both men focusing intently on the screen and clutching their controllers tightly. It was anyoneâs game, as they both traded the first place position several times while the finish line drew nearer.
âYou got this babe!â Ryujin cheered for her boyfriend, her barely contained breasts jiggling in their lacy enclosure as she bounced with excitement. Tae pulled ahead, looking like he was set to win, when one of his girlfriendâs tits popped out, greeting the room in its full fleshy glory. âOops!â She laughed.
Her exposed chest caught Taeâs eye, and he shot her a look of disgust. âRyujin!? What the fuck?â The momentary distraction was enough for him to take the final turn a little too widely, and Junho took the lead. âNo, no, no!â He smashed his buttons in a futile attempt to make up the distance, but the race was lost.
âWoo!â Ryujin exclaimed, accidentally letting her joy at the result slip off of her tongue. She met eyes with her fuming boyfriend and tucked her breast back into the bra. âAwww, babe! Iâm sorry!â
âWhat the fuck was that!?â Tae screamed at her, slamming his controller onto the table.
âI didnât mean to! I swear, it just got loose while I was cheering you on!â
âWell thatâs not fair! Another race!â He demanded, his face beet red.
âSorry bro, a dealâs a deal. Accidents happen,â Junho said calmly standing from his seat.
âBut...â Tae looked at his almost nude girlfriend in disbelief, her small frame eclipsed by his large roommate who approached her. She simply shrugged.
âYou did really well! Sorry I accidentally distracted you...â While she was telling the truth about the wardrobe malfunction, she put on an act to mirror his disappointment, pouting as she walked over and gave him a peck on the lips. âSee you tomorrow, babe. Goodnight.â Tae slumped into the couch, his head spinning as he watched the beauty disappear behind Junhoâs door.
Ryujin wasnât sure what to expect as she sat on her side of the bed, resting her back against the cool, cushioned headboard. The first thing she noticed was that her sleeping mate had gotten into bed with his boxers still on, and was idly tapping at his phone. She lay there for several minutes wondering when he would inevitably start the stroking session, but he didnât. She hated herself for letting it bother her, yet couldnât help but ask about it.
âWow, no self-service tonight, huh?â
Junho replied, âSorry to disappoint. I guess your body all covered up and hidden isnât doing it for me anymore.â He was determined to make her work for it, and focused his thoughts on anything other than the sexy body next to him to maintain self control.
âWhat is your imagination broken or something?â She teased, glancing at the flaccid bulge in his underwear. She felt an urge to do something to awaken it. It was almost as if his lack of an erection was a personal insult to her. After no response from him, she made a transparent excuse.
âEh... Well itâs a pretty hot night anyway...â She pulled the rest of the blanket off of her, revealing her long, smooth legs and adjusting her bra to push up her swelling chest as much as possible.
They both feigned an interest in their phones, while secretly stealing glances at each other. Ryujin noticed his crotch had swelled a bit, and commented on his half-boner. âHm. I guess something is doing it for you now...â She said slyly.
âMaybe a little,â he responded casually. The man knew she was bothered by his lack of interest, and it was a joy to watch her squirm.
Ryujinâs annoyance hit a tipping point, and she rose to her knees, facing him. âOh, so all of a sudden Iâm just not hot enough huh?â As soon as the words left her lips she felt the sting of embarrassment.
Junho looked at her smugly. âYouâre pretty hot, itâs just Iâve seen it all before, ya know?â
Ryujin subconsciously tugged her bra down a little further. âIâm already showing so much! Donât you like this little number? I canât believe itâs all Iâve been wearing all night.â
âMhmm...â
âI think youâre just trying to get me naked...â Ryujin added.
Junho said nothing, but stared at her chest intently. It was now a game of chicken, and Ryujin was fully invested in the challenge of making him hard by the mere sight of her.
She slowly pulled her lacy bra further and further down her chest, and as more of her soft, perky tits were revealed, his cock grew in size. Finally, as the material had stretched as far as it could go, she reached in and scooped her breasts out of their prison, and they stood proudly out in the open.
Quite pleased with herself, she looked at his fully enlarged bulge, which was straining against the fabric of his boxers. âI guess you couldnât help yourself,â she said victoriously. âArenât you gonna play with it?â
âIâd really prefer if you did,â Junho replied. Her tits looked better than he couldâve imagined, but he had to hold back just a little longer if he was going to ensure access.
âWell... Thatâs against the rules,â she argued.
âSo was rubbing your pussy,â he said.
âNo, that was different...â She was losing steam.
âUh huh... Why are you so horny for my cock, Ryujin?â
âIâm not...â She could hardly believe her own actions. Here she was, in nothing but a thong, trying to tease her roommate into jerking off in front of her. It was beyond ridiculous, but in the heat of the moment, she didnât have the strength to stop herself.
âYou havenât taken your eyes off of it. And your nipples are hard,â he argued. Fighting the compulsion to attack her alluring chest mouth-first.
Ryujin blushed and deflected, âDoesnât it hurt? Constrained all tightly like that?â
âAs a matter of fact, it is very uncomfortable. Now help me out.â
âYouâd like that, wouldnât you?â She teased.
âSo would you,â Junho said as he reached out and gently took her hand in his. He slowly guided her to his crotch and rested her on his bulge. He lightly stroked himself using her fingers, and looked at her to gauge her reaction. She said nothing, and remained fixated on what he was doing. He then moved her fingers to his waistband and left them there.
âAll you have to do is pull this down and it will be freed.â
â...I... Canât-â
âDo it...â
Despite her better judgment, Ryujin tugged at his boxers and his thick, swollen cock sprang out, waving back and forth a few times before settling into its straight, rigid position. Junho took her hand again and wrapped her fingers around the shaft. It was radiating heat, and looked even bigger up close in her small hand. She unknowingly held her breath as she eased her fingers up and down the impressive length. It was so much larger than Taeâs, and she felt mesmerized by it. It was as if she was carefully examining some otherworldly object.
âMmm... You have no idea how long Iâve waited for this...â Junho cooed, snapping her out of her daze and fully removing his underwear.
âWell donât get used to it. This is a one time thing,â she muttered in an attempt to maintain some semblance of self control.
Ryujin had a feeling she would never live up to those words as she squeezed his hardness. She made herself more comfortable, laying on her side and propping herself up on her free elbow. Her face was just inches from his bare chest as she worked her hand along his meaty shaft.
âIâm just curious, thatâs all...â She murmured distractedly, admiring the weight of him in her grip. She traced the tip of the head down to the base with her finger tips, and cupped her balls in her palm. They seemed so heavy and full, which made perfect sense to her given the sheer volume of semen he would always unleash.
Junhoâs idle hands also began wandering, and he softly ran his fingers through her hair. While whispering words of encouragement to her, he slowly stroked her down the length of her back, grinning upon noticing goosebumps forming on her shoulders. He traced lines up and down her spine, barely making contact and causing her to shiver with delight. He could hardly believe it was actually happening. His best friendâs girl, whom heâd wanted to fuck since the moment he met her, was willingly caressing his cock. The fact that she had always been so standoffish and rude to him made the moment all the sweeter.
Ryujin was so consumed with studying his manhood that she barely noticed when Junho started touching her. It wasnât until he made contact with her plump ass cheek that she paused.
âHey... stop that,â she said weakly.
âOh, be quiet,â he responded light-heartedly, reciprocating her unconvincing protest.
She began pumping his cock, allowing him to squeeze her ass, which was all the encouragement he needed to take it further. He rested his palm on her shoulder and pushed her down into the bed so that she was flat on her back beside him. He then shifted down to her level and placed his muscular arm on her abdomen, holding her in place as well as giving him access to her lower half.
âWhat are you doing!?â Ryujin cried out with a mix of nervousness and excitement. She grabbed his thick forearm with both hands to try and stop the inevitable, but he was already testing the wetness of her thong.
âJunho, stop,â Ryujin said urgently, trying to sound like she meant it.
âMake me,â he replied as he slid his fingers under the damp fabric and touched her dripping pussy for the first time.
Ryujin squirmed as he caressed her most sensitive area. It felt like her last line of defense was being bombarded; the private part of her, reserved for her boyfriend, under assault. The pleasure hit her immediately though, and after hopelessly struggling under his strength for a short while, she began to give in to it.
âNnghh... Please!â She wasnât even sure what she was pleading for anymore, whether it be to stop or continue.
âWe both know you need this,â he said with authority as he dipped two fingers into her and started hooking them back and forth. His elbow dug into her chest as she struggled against him, his digits fully penetrating her. With his other hand, he grabbed her soft tit and squeezed. He switched between mauling the flesh of her breasts and pinching her stiff nipples, all while firmly stimulating her g spot.
Ryujin moaned openly as Junho continued to grope and finger her. His strong hands were doing things to her that she couldnât possibly achieve on her own. She was completely overwhelmed. The loud squishing sound from her pussy almost seemed to sing of her bodyâs consent as he dug into it. She could scream for her boyfriend, but her brain wouldnât allow it. The pleasure was too great, and her intense craving for it had gone on too long. There was nothing she could do but lay there and take it.
âDamn. I donât think Iâve ever felt a cunt this wet. You must be loving this,â Junho muttered.
He was right. She could feel her juices gushing like never before, as if her body instinctively knew how to prepare for an encounter with such a dominant, masculine partner. A movement in the corner of her eye reminded her of his monstrous cock, and without thinking she reached out to take it. She pumped it hard in her closed fist, mirroring the intensity he was unleashing on her sex. She was suddenly overcome with the desire to make him cum; to witness his incredible manhood explode by her own hand.
âUgh, just like that baby,â Junho cooed, elated that she had warmed up enough to reciprocate. He was determined to orgasm along with her, and ride the high together. The sight of her naked form sprawled out in front of him was enough to do the trick. She was absolutely beautiful. Delicate and elegant, yet oozing raw sexuality, especially in her current state. She was built for this, and he already couldnât wait to have more of her.
The duo were wrapped up in a dense cloud of sexual intensity, jaws clenched and eyebrows furrowed while they vigorously worked to get each other off. So many tense nights had led up to this moment, and the barriers that had been keeping them tame were crashing down all around them. Junho leaned in and pressed his lips against hers, his rough jaw making contact with her delicate chin.
Ryujin opened her mouth immediately and accepted his passion, their tongues clashing near the peak of their lust. It felt even more wrong somehow to accept the intimate kiss, but it felt so incredibly good and fueled her desire for his masculine dominance to even greater heights. She allowed him to taste her completely, moaning into the strong kiss with unbridled pleasure.
âOh my god... ngh fuck! Iâm gonna cum! Iâm gonna - NGH - CUM!â Ryujin felt a powerful force rising in her, like an overinflated balloon that was about to burst. And then it did. Her jaw fell wide open, and her thighs squeezed inwards, trapping Junhoâs hand like a vice. Sharp jolts of ecstasy pulsed from her depths, igniting every nerve in her body. Time seemed to stop as she was thrashed again and again. The thick fingers inside of her did not skip a beat, and each purposeful movement seemed to directly stroke the pleasure center of her brain.
Ryujin felt a wetness grace the back of her hand, and opened her eyes just in time to see Junhoâs throbbing member erupting. Thick, sticky seed blasted into the air and coated every inch of her closed fist. As her climax shook her body, her unsteady grip on him caused quite the mess. His vigorous load was flung in every direction, splattering both of them and the sheets. As the potent pleasure boiling within them cooled to a simmer, they couldnât help but share a tension-cutting laugh. There was cum everywhere.
âHoly fuck...â Junho murmured. âThat was so damn hot.â
Ryujin felt like she was floating on a cloud, and closed her eyes to savor the moment. âYeah...â She uttered the simple agreement with a long drawn out breath. She hadnât felt such immense satisfaction in a long time, and allowed herself a peaceful moment to soak it in as the many drops of semen trickled down her skin. Her brand new underwear had gotten completely soiled, but she couldnât care less in that blissful moment.
The pair managed to eventually clean themselves up and remove the soiled sheets. As Ryujin settled into her spot on the bed, the positive feelings that had dominated her consciousness were giving way to feelings of guilt and shame. She and Junho had officially gone too far, and she wrestled with the thought in silence before finally falling asleep.
Ryujin kept herself busy the next day, even opting to pick up an extra shift at work. The knowledge that she had cheated on her boyfriend weighed heavily on her mind, but she also felt a flash of excitement any time she recalled the event. The steamy encounter with her roommate made her already intense appetite even harder to ignore, and she had to fight the urge to duck into a dressing room to get herself off.
She even managed to mount Tae that night, desperate for cock, and perhaps eager to soothe her conscience by enjoying some intimate time that wasnât âoff limitsâ. The troubled young man was more eager than he had been in a while, fueled by his jealousy from the previous night. After riding him for a short time, Ryujin gasped as he took control and flipped her onto her back, fucking her with the anger he had felt after losing her to Junho. While he did manage to build a nice rhythm, he couldnât last more than a minute, and she was left unsatisfied.
âThat felt so good,â he said, breathing heavily and studying her reaction.
âYeah...â She lied, noting how incredibly miniscule his load was inside the spent condom compared to the voluminous fountain that had splashed her the previous evening. Her boyfriend had always been enough for her before, but things were different now. She felt a pit in her stomach knowing that things would likely not go back to how they were between them.
âIâm sorry for getting so upset last night. I just... really, really didnât want to lose that bet...â Tae muttered, his head hanging downwards.
âItâs okay, babe. Believe me, I know how it feels for Junho to get under your skin.â
âHeâs such an ass sometimes. Did you - um - you wore that lingerie to bed with him?â He asked nervously.
âI... did...â Ryujin confessed slowly. âBut I just got under the covers and went right to sleep. Itâs not like I wore them for him or anything,â she added, knowing full well that the two-piece was in fact at the bottom of the laundry basket, speckled with their roommateâs dry cum. The comment seemed to comfort her boyfriend slightly.
âOh, okay. Well, I guess I can get over it. As long as he doesnât get the wrong idea.â Tae still wasnât crazy about his friend getting an eye-full of his girlfriendâs exposed body, but decided not to push the issue further. âI know that youâre just doing all of this to help us survive... And I know I need to step it up. Iâve been a real slob,â the boyfriend admitted.
âThanks for owning up to it. I believe in you. You just gotta get back out there,â she encouraged.
âYouâre right, and I will. Love you.â
âLove you too.â
Though their relationship had deteriorated recently, Ryujin still had feelings for Tae. He had been her first serious partner and they had lost their virginities together. The struggles of late had done damage, but there was still something there. Despite her actions, she still wanted the best for him, and wrestled with the thought that it might be best to just come clean about how things between her and Junho had gotten out of hand. If only she could think straight. The thrill of discovering this new, sexual side of herself, and the twisted pleasure that came with it was overwhelming her sensibilities.
Ryujin dreamed vividly that night. She was in Junhoâs bed, but the room looked different for some reason. He was there, stroking his huge dick as usual, and he suddenly reached out and ripped the blanket off of her. She was fully naked, with her fingers in her pussy, frozen like a deer in headlights. âI knew it!â He shouted, and scrambled on top of her. He slapped her creamy folds with his hard manhood and then firmly thrust into her. Ryujin was paralyzed and lay there helplessly while he had his way with her. It felt fucking incredible. She moaned loudly in pleasure, captivated by the animalistic, sex-crazed expression on his face. Then his face morphed into Taeâs.
âBabe? Babe? Ryujin!â
Her eyes snapped open and she found that she was in her own room. Her boyfriend was gently shaking her. âYou were moaning in your sleep. I figured you were having a nightmare or something,â he said worriedly.
âOh... Yeah... A nightmare,â she lied. She immediately noticed that her underwear were drenched. Sheâd experienced the first of many sexual dreams involving her roommate that night, and waited for Tae to fall asleep to quell the overwhelming urge between her legs.
â
The new routine had been established, and although she would earnestly try each and every time to keep to herself, Ryujin would inevitably end up with her hands wrapped around Junhoâs hard cock while his fingers assaulted her cunt.
âNot tonight,â sheâd say, turning her back to him as if to go straight to sleep like the faithful girlfriend she was supposed to be. She knew full well he wasnât going to take âNoâ for an answer though, and secretly craved his attempts to convince her.
âOh, playing games again tonight, are we?â He teased. âAs if your little pussy isnât soaking wet in there, waiting to be manhandled.â
She squirmed her thighs together, his words having an effect.
âDonât know what youâre talking about.â
The swoosh of his boxers being removed could be heard.
âCome play with your new favorite toy a little.â
âYouâve got two hands. Use âem,â Ryujin teased back.
âIf you insist,â he chuckled, scooting towards her and reaching under the blanket.
âNo! You know what I meant!â
She squealed as his large hands roamed over her exposed skin. Ryujin always knew the battle was lost the minute he started touching her. Something about the way he manipulated her with his powerful fingers drove her crazy. Before she could get another word in, his toned arm was around her narrow waist, pulling her into him. Now wrapped in his strong embrace, the dainty woman was powerless to resist. She let out an involuntary moan as he firmly pulled her thong to the side and rubbed her slippery clit.
âWhy do you always have to put up a fight?â He growled into her ear.
âNgghh! Because youâre a stupid creep! Iâm - Uhnn - not bad like you!â She could hardly get the words out as he finger fucked her, her lower half vibrating with the intensity of his actions. Ryujin squirmed against the large frame of her roommate, his hard cock at full attention and slapping against her quivering thigh.
âYouâre a horny little slut, and you know it,â he muttered hoarsely, nibbling her ear. âWhy else would your cunt be this fucking wet for me?â
Ryujin wanted to tell him that she despised him, but instead her mouth fell open in silence as she came all over Junhoâs invasive fingers. After twitching in pleasure for an imperceptible length of time, she finally drew a breath and let out a girlish whimper of satisfaction. It never ceased to amaze her how quickly he could bring her to orgasm.
âMy turn, slut.â He commanded, and watched as his best friendâs girlfriend obediently took his big cock in both hands and got to work.
âStop calling me that. Iâm only doing this so youâll leave me alone and go to sleep.â
âOh, is that right?â
âMhm!â
âSo it has nothing to do with your secret infatuation with me?â Junho loved to press her buttons while she serviced him.
âPffft. You wish. This is purely transactional,â she shot back, matter-of-factly.
âKeep telling yourself that, sexy. Ahh... thatâs nice. Can you get it wet for me though?â
Ryujin rolled her eyes. âWhereâs your lotion?â
âIâm fresh out.â
âUgh. If it will make this go faster.â She leaned over and drooled a large strand of saliva to coat his shaft before pumping his length diligently with a renewed effort.
âHooohh... Fuck yeah, just like that.â he encouraged. His roommate was using both hands in unison, fervently stimulating him with just the right amount of pressure and speed.
âWhy are you always so damn hard?â She asked, genuinely curious about his libido which was foreign to her.
âBecause Iâm a fucking alpha,â he laughed as she scoffed at his clichĂŠ arrogance. âI donât know... Iâve always had this massive sex drive. Kinda seems like yours isnât too far off.â
âIâm nothing like you,â Ryujin argued.
âI think youâre wrong. Two peas in a pod, lady,â he joked as he playfully grabbed at her bra-clad tits.
She couldnât hold back a brief smile as she flinched, protesting, âHey, stop!â She squeezed his cock in retaliation, before spitting on it to reapply her lubrication.
âWhat about Tae? Something tells me heâs not... Keeping up with your needs?â
Ryujin could feel her cheeks blushing. âWhat? No. No, heâs - Itâs fine.â
Junho raised an eyebrow suspiciously. âWell that sounds... Fine,â he teased.
âWhatever. Okay, letâs see that big alpha load already. My arms are getting tired,â she said sarcastically, jerking his big dick enthusiastically.
âAnything for my hot little cumslut,â he muttered.
Before long, the roomate was grunting with delight as he spurted his fat load into the air, much of the sticky substance covering Ryujinâs slick fingers and slender forearms.
âGod damn, baby... Youâre getting really good at that...â He cooed.
âYouâre disgusting...â She said, suppressing a grin as she messily wiped her slimy hands off onto his thigh. Without even fully cleaning up, she nestled into her spot on the bed and fell into a deep sleep.
â
Junho was growing bolder, knowing the shift that was occurring within Ryujin after several nights of giving in to his advances. While cleaning up some dishes in the kitchen after dinner, he noticed her slip behind him to get something out of the cupboard. He glanced back and observed her stretching for a glass on the top shelf. She was already in her night wear: the usual flimsy camisole and skin-tight short shorts. Her toned midriff was exposed as she reached for the receptacle. Junho noted that Tae was focused on his video game with his back turned to them, and silently closed the gap between him and the alluring woman. He pressed into her back and gently held her against him with a hand on her hip.
âLet me get that for you,â he said casually, easily reaching over her and grabbing the glass.
âHey!â Ryujin whispered harshly, caught off guard and suddenly trapped between the counter and the large frame behind her. âWhat the hell are you doing!?â She squirmed against him and could feel his hardness poking against the small of her back.
Junho ignored her question, and smelled her hair, firmly holding her still. âGod you smell good. Are you excited to cum all over my fingers again tonight?â He murmured softly into her ear, one hand inching down towards her mound. His cock inflated rapidly as he imagined her writhing in pleasure on his bed again.
âStop! Seriously! Youâre gonna-â
âMake you too wet before you say goodnight to Tae?â He interrupted, teasing her verbally as well as with his fingers, which were now pressing against her clit and ever so slightly drawing circles.
âNo! Ngh... Junho, please stop... Heâs gonna see us...â She pleaded as quietly as she could. Even over her shorts, his firm touch was starting to feel good. She didnât have the strength to escape his powerful hold and a sense of helplessness washed over her. Her legs started to weaken as her pussy responded to his aggression, growing juicier by the second. Junhoâs free hand had traveled up her torso and was lightly grazing her nipples, which were stiff and sensitive.
She knew there was nothing she could do short of calling to her boyfriend for help, but she couldnât do that. What if he discovered how much their brutish roommateâs groping was turning her on, she thought. Ryujin cursed her body for once again betraying her and giving into the manâs forceful assault. Instead of insisting that he stop, she was becoming jello in his arms, silently accepting that he was going to do what he wanted to her.
âIâm so fucking hard right now... Maybe I should just fuck you right here,â Junho threatened through clenched teeth.
As she lost the battle for control over her body, her mind began to slip as well. She imagined the muscular jerk tugging her shorts down, and thrusting his huge cock into her warm, welcoming cunt. Surely he wouldnât go that far, she thought. He wouldnât take the last bit of her innocence then and there in the kitchen and fuck her needy pussy right behind her boyfriend. The vision was beyond tantalizing, and her dripping sex ached for more.
Ryujin surrendered to his dominant touch, and just as she felt an orgasm building, Junho released his grip and shuffled back to the sink. His dismount was so jarring that she nearly groaned in frustration at the instantaneous loss of pleasure. She desperately needed that climax, and could think of nothing else.
âAsshole,â she muttered as she stomped past him, heading straight for his bedroom.
âI just got insanely tired... Goodnight, babe,â she announced to Tae, pausing in the doorway for a brief moment to shoot a stern, suggestive look at Junho. The roommate grinned at her mischievously and tucked his erection into his waistband before following her into the room.
âNight...â Tae answered nonchalantly, too engrossed in his game to notice the oddness of what had just occurred. Had he been more observant, he might have perceived his girlfriendâs earlier than usual departure, her flush red cheeks, or the fact that sheâd left an unused glass on the kitchen counter.
Junho closed the door behind him to find that Ryujin was already naked from the waist down and had jumped into his bed. Her pussy was out in the open and glistening with her juices. It was the first time he had actually laid eyes on it, and he wasnât surprised to find that it appeared pristine. His cock swelled with anticipation as he drank in the sight of her unprotected delicate pinkness.
âAre you gonna finish what you started you fucking perv?â She taunted him while lightly teasing herself.
She was still right on the brink of an orgasm, and her inhibitions had melted completely. Ryujin couldâve easily just finished the job herself, but she craved what she knew would be a far more potent explosion if Junho dug his strong fingers into her. She longed for him to hold her down and force it out of her. She was discovering that the loss of control when he dominated her was a major turn on.
Her expectations were subverted as he swiftly moved between her parted legs and dove face-first into her tender folds. She opened her mouth to oppose his daring action, but her voice got stuck in her throat as his strong tongue graced her sensitive cunt. Her hands reflexively shot out and grasped his hair, holding on for what she knew would be a wild ride. The handsome man worked his tongue expertly, stroking the full length of her pussy with firm, steady licks. She had to stop herself from moaning too loudly, remembering her boyfriend was just on the other side of the wall.
Junho kept her right on the edge, pausing every so often to catch his breath and plant kisses right on her swollen clit. His alluring roommate tasted better than he couldâve imagined. The sweet and tangy flavor was intoxicating and caused all of his blood to rush to his cock. He tested her carefully, paying attention to how her body reacted to his work. Stiffening his tongue, he prodded and teased her entrance, which felt incredibly tight. No doubt, it would feel amazing wrapped around his dick. He wasnât sure he would be able to prevent himself from penetrating her any longer. The urge was ramping up with each passing second; his instincts becoming harder to ignore.
âPleeease!â Ryujin whispered in desperation. She was right on the cusp of a big one, but her roommate wouldnât let her have it. He had her firmly pinned down, legs spread wide as he carefully teased her gushing pussy. When she felt she was one lick away from cumming, he would shift his focus, kissing and gently biting a path away from her aching sex. He was clearly toying with her, and taking the opportunity to sample every inch of her exposed lower half.
Junho couldnât help but grin as he feasted on the begging girlfriend. Her cute, wanting pleas for more were music to his ears. He took his time, lightly dragging his teeth along her flawless, taut skin whenever he needed her to cool down. âMmmm... Tastes so good... You like how I tease your cheating little pussy, baby?â
Ryujin groaned in frustration as his hot breath tickled her throbbing clit. âUgggh... I need to cum soooo badly...â
He prodded her once, flattening his tongue and quickly withdrawing it. âLike this?â
âYesssss! Oh my god... Why are you doing this to me?â She wanted to scream at him, but knew it was too risky. She hoped the T.V. in the next room was loud enough to cover up her whimpers.
âBecause youâre a naughty cheating girlfriend, and you need to be taught a lesson.â
âNgggh!â She thrust her hips in an attempt to get the last bit of stimulation she needed, but he stopped her just in time, pressing her down into the bed more firmly.
âYou resisted me, so now you have to wait until I think you deserve to cum.â
âFuck, Junho...â
âWell? Do you deserve it?â
âMhmm! Please!â
âI donât know about that...â Junho flashed his teeth mischievously and bit the bony peak of her hip.
âAhhh! Just give it to me! I Deserve it!â
âYouâll be a good cheating slut from now on?â
She hated him more than ever for forcing her to say such submissive things, but she was well beyond the point of having enough resistance left for mere words. âIâll be good!â
âA good what?â
âA good - Ngh - cheating s-slut!â Ryujin couldnât stay silent anymore. The long build up was about to hit the breaking point. âOhhh... Oh fuuuck yesss... Oh my god... Iâm about to-Ahh!â She gasped sharply as Junho abruptly stopped stimulating her.
âIâll make you cum, slut, but Iâm going to fuck you after,â he stated, still inches from her soaking pussy.
âNooo. No, we canât. Ugh! Pleeeease!â The frustrated woman bucked her hips and pulled at his hair, desperate for release. âFucking pleeease make me cum,â she continued, her orgasm simmering just below the surface. She needed it more than anything, but had just enough sense left to stop him from taking her fully.
âAnything but that-Oh!â
He stoked the fire with another quick lash of his tongue, but it wasnât enough to finish her off. Ryujinâs hands left his head and moved to her burning sex, but he deftly caught them with his own, pinning her arms down on either side of her.
âBeg me to fuck you...â He persisted.
âThatâs too far! Please, anything else!â
Her mind was racing, searching for a way to convince the withholding jerk.
âIâll suck your cock! Please! Make me cum and Iâll suck you off!â She blurted out the offer, which she hastily rationalized was a fair trade given the current predicament, though she wasnât sure where the idea came from.
âDeal,â Junho agreed simply, dipping his face back down to resume his feast. He wasnât hell-bent on rushing sex with her that night, and was elated to hear her depraved suggestion to service him with her hot little mouth. He released one of her wrists and drove two fingers into her cunt while tonguing her clit like a feral beast.
Immediately, Ryujinâs tight hole constricted and her back arched as her long awaited climax finally popped.
âOhhhfffuuuuck!â
She cried out in ecstasy, her fingernails digging into Junhoâs skull as she clenched him tightly between her thighs. The pleasure-filled girlfriend grinded her pussy against her roommateâs face for what felt like the lengthiest, most intense orgasm of her life, with no regard for the fact that a thin wall was all that separated her unfaithful act from her clueless boyfriend.
When she could finally muster the control to open her eyes, she was greeted by her roommateâs manly visage. His chiseled jaw was slick with her juices and his eyes glowed with a predatory flare that sent a shiver down her spine. She watched as he rose to his knees and peeled off his underwear, allowing his massive cock to spring into view. It dawned on her what she had agreed to moments prior, and she didnât bother putting up a fight. She was about to have that fat piece of masculine meat in her mouth, and she was secretly thrilled about it.
Knock! Knock! Knock!
Ryujin nearly leapt into the air like a startled cat upon hearing the sharp knocks on Junhoâs bedroom door.
âBabe?â Tae asked from just outside.
She was frozen in indecision. Maybe he would just assume she was asleep and go away, she thought.
âI know youâre awake. I heard noises a minute ago.â
âUh-Just a sec!â Ryujin scrambled off of the bed and looked around frantically for her shorts. Her heart was racing as she tried to brace herself for what would surely be a messy confrontation. He had heard her. It was all over. She had really fucked up this time. She tugged her shorts up and took a deep breath, noting that Junho had gotten under the covers and was in his usual sleeping position. She slowly opened the door, her face red-hot with shame, and met Taeâs suspicious gaze.
âYou left your phone out here,â he muttered, presenting the device to her.
âOh... Oops! T-thank you,â she stammered nervously.
âAre you okay?â He reached out and tested her forehead with his palm. âOh my God. Youâre burning up!â
âI am?â Ryujin couldnât think straight in her panic. âI mean yeah... Now that you mention it-I donât feel right. Maybe thatâs why I was so tired...â She was suddenly hyper aware of the light sweat on her forehead and the slickness of Junhoâs saliva between her thighs.
âWell it didnât sound like you were sleeping...â Tae leaned over to get a peek into the dimly lit bedroom. His roommate appeared to be asleep.
âYou just woke me up. Maybe I was talking in my sleep or something?â It was a poor excuse at best, but she crossed her fingers and silently prayed that he would let it go.
âThatâs weird... Well if youâre sick you should really get some good rest in your own bed, donât you think?â He asked, gently rubbing her arm.
âYeah... I guess youâre right...â
She was more than a little disappointed, but given how fortunate she was to have not been caught, there was no sense in arguing the point. She followed her boyfriend back to their room, and fell asleep to the thought that she had somehow gotten herself into a situation where she now owed her arrogant roommate a blowjob.
Ryujin stirred the next morning to a rustling in her bed. She felt a weight on top of her and opened her heavy eyelids to find Junhoâs massive cock staring back at her. She attempted to scoot up and away from him, only to discover that her torso and arms were pinned to the mattress beneath the heavy intruder.
âWhat the-You canât be in here!â The young woman was trapped, her eyes darting around the space to confirm that this was indeed the room she shared with her boyfriend.
âIâve been rock hard since you abandoned me last night. I couldnât wait any longer,â Junho responded, clearly enjoying her helpless squirming.
âB-but Tae-â
âShhh... He left to get you medicine, since youâre sooo sick...â He teased sarcastically, gently prodding her plump lips with his enlarged tip. âTime to pay your dues. You better make me cum before he gets back, or Iâll consider it a violation of the deal.â
âCanât this wait until tomorrow night? This is too risky...â Ryujin tried to reason with the aggressor, but she could already feel herself becoming wet with anticipation. She knew he was going to take what he wanted from her, and couldnât deny how much that turned her on. The warm, musky meat against her face was demanding her attention, and her mind flickered back to the potent orgasm its owner had brought her to the previous night. Maybe if she was proficient enough to satisfy him quickly, there would be enough time for him to work his magic on her again, she hoped. The pinned girlfriendâs tongue protruded from her lips, and made contact with her roommateâs cock head.
Junho couldnât help but moan in relief as her wet tongue graced his needy manhood. Another invisible barrier was crumbling around them as his best friendâs girl willingly tasted his hard dick for the first time. She looked adorable, hyper-focused on exploring the ridged surface with little licks here and there. He had the urge to just jam himself into her mouth and fuck her face to completion, but held back in favor of the tortuous but enticing teasing she was putting him through.
âGod damn, Ryujin...â He muttered in ecstasy.
She flashed her teeth briefly, flattered by his infatuation, and slowly parted her lips around his velvety skin. Without missing a beat, her roommate began easing his way into her welcoming mouth. As her wet warmth enveloped him inch by inch, her eyes followed the length of his chiseled torso upwards until she met his gaze. As their pupils locked, she felt his thick cock twitch against her tongue, and another deep moan escaped him. His expression of intense desire and hunger made her pussy ache. âMmmm...â She cooed involuntarily; her mouth now completely full.
Junho began softly thrusting his hips back and forth, aiding Ryujinâs efforts as she repeatedly lifted her head to stimulate him. She had little leverage from her current position, but worked his sensitive organ with as much enthusiasm as she could muster. She wanted to do a good job for him; to surprise him with how skilled she could be. Heâd been responsible for giving her multiple mind-blowing climaxes, and it felt right to return the favor.
As if he could read her mind, he murmured, âFuck yes... Ahh, youâre being such a good little cocksucker for me...â
She squirmed beneath him, squeezing her thighs together as a sting of desire accompanied his words. Is that what I am now, she thought, his little cocksucker? She wasnât sure how to respond, but she knew that the whole situation was immensely hot, and that she wanted more.
Junho detected the lust and submission in her eyes, which encouraged him. âMmm... Doesnât it feel so fucking good to be the sexy little slut youâre meant to be?â
Ryujin had never felt so degraded, and though she didnât want him to stop, she couldnât allow him to think she had fully given up all control.
âIâm not a slut, you ass. Youâre making me do this,â she said defiantly before allowing him to stuff her mouth again.
âAnd youâre loving it,â he teased.
âShut up,â she gargled through his warm meat. She lightly dug her nails into his calves, her forearms still secured in place under his weight.
âYou want me to get off of your arms so you can play with yourself?â Junho grinned mischievously as he reached behind him and pulled the blanket off of her lower half. She clamped her thighs together in an effort to defend against him, but his strong fingers slipped into the crevice and found their way to her slick pussy.
Ryujin reflexively moaned as he felt his way around her delicate folds. As usual, her body was betraying her, undermining any attempts to deny that she was enjoying his advances. As Junho toyed with her, she began bucking her hips against him, craving more stimulation. He grazed her entrance again and again, never lingering long enough to let the pleasure build. She hated how much of an effect he had on her, her brow furrowed in frustration as his thick shaft slid in and out of her stretched mouth.
Suddenly, he lifted himself off of her and fell onto his back. âLetâs see you put that slutty little mouth to use,â he practically growled, his rigid saliva-covered cock pointing at the ceiling. âGet on your hands and knees.â
âFuck you,â Ryujin mumbled, complying with his order anyway and positioning herself to continue the taboo blowjob. Her more conservative inner voice was screaming at her for letting this outsider boss her around in the private bed she shared with her boyfriend.
âAss up, so I can play with you,â he commanded, firmly gripping her thigh and pulling her backside toward him. She moaned again, revealing that she was enjoying his manhandling. She felt like a weightless doll as he effortlessly shifted her body around to his liking. Junho couldnât help but continue to push her boundaries. He smacked her exposed ass cheek with a loud crack that echoed throughout the room.
âOW! WHAT TH-â Ryujinâs cry of protest was sharply interrupted as his large hand grabbed the back of her head and guided her down onto his thick cock. She gagged and dug her nails into his thigh as he jabbed the back of her throat. One hand wrapped itself in her hair and pulled her back enough to allow her to breathe, while the other began rubbing up and down the length of her creamy pussy. âYou fuckin-Ggghhh!â
Junho chewed his bottom lip as he aggressively forced the young girlfriend back onto his dick. He started jerking off his considerable length with her mouth, all while finger fucking her tight pussy and rubbing her swollen clit with his thumb.
With each push downwards, Ryujin grew more accustomed to his girth, and her gags gave way to muffled, throaty moans. He was completely having his way with her, and there was little she could do to stop it-not that she wanted to. At first his abrupt assault was appalling, but she quickly warmed up to it. Her juices ran freely down her thighs as he pumped two of his broad fingers in and out of her squelching entrance. Her throat relaxed, and little by little more of his shaft passed through her lips. If she hadnât felt like a slut before, she was beginning to feel like one now. She had never felt so utterly objectified and depraved. Her ass still stung from his harsh slap, but she found herself craving another. Her emotions and desires were a confusing, chaotic soup, but before she could dwell on them, a powerful orgasm erupted within her.
In a move that subverted even her own expectations, she forcefully pushed herself up, the slimy cock flopping out of her mouth, and screamed, âOh my God, Junhonn! Iâm fucking cumming so hard! Spank me again!â A second later, a sharp jolt of tantalizing pain ran through her as he indulged, and then another. âOH! FUCK YEAHHH!â She exclaimed as she rode the mind-bending climax, tightly gripping his throbbing cock with both hands. He continued to punish her plump backside and ravage her quivering pussy while she shrieked wildly in ecstasy.
The scene was amongst the hottest things Junho had ever witnessed, and he felt that his throbbing cock was on the brink of exploding. He quickly grabbed Ryujinâs hips, twisting her onto her back and straddled her writhing body while he stroked his manhood to completion. With his free hand, he ripped her flimsy top down from her chest, tearing it and exposing her breasts. She yelped in surprise, but was too lost in pleasure to care. With a drawn out grunt from the towering man, a viscous, milky rope shot out and splashed against her cheek. Another landed soundly along the bridge of her nose, and the third across her agape lips, mostly falling into her mouth and coating her tongue. The several remaining blasts of his dense semen barely waned in strength, splattering all over her tits, and painting her torso and tattered shirt. By the time the last few dribbles trickled down her tummy, Ryujin was glazed to the point of being almost unrecognizable.
For several minutes the pair remained frozen in place, breathing heavily and basking in the aftermath of what had just occurred. The fact that she had just willingly sucked her roommateâs big cock and screamed like a slut for him while he covered her in his cum barely seemed to matter at that moment. As her chest rose and fell, she could feel the copious semen dripping down her skin and soaking into the bedding.
Junho was the first to speak, âYou ever been plastered like that?â
âNever,â she answered weakly.
âItâs a good look for you,â he added, scooting himself off of her and reaching for his phone. He aimed the camera at her and joked, âSay Iâm Junhoâs little cum slut.â
âFuck off!â She couldnât help but giggle a bit, shielding her face with her open palm. He held the screen out to her, and her jaw dropped as she processed the obscene image on display. It took a full second for Ryujin to recognize the naked woman lewdly sprawled out and coated in jizz in the picture. Even though she had just watched him take the photo, she couldnât believe the unbelievably slutty looking figure was her. It was also hard to miss how incredibly satisfied her expression appeared. Despite having just cheated on her boyfriend again, with this cocky, manhandling brute no less, Ryujin felt more carefree than she had in a long while. That is, until the sound of the front door opening could be heard through the wall.
âShit!â She whispered through clenched teeth. âNot again!â Her eyes flickered back and forth indecisively as the door closed loudly and footsteps drew near. Junho sprung into action, scooping her up and repositioning her onto the bed, before pulling the thick comforter over both of them and laying as flat as he could next to her. Ryujin plucked at the covers hurriedly, trying to conceal any shapes, and ducked her face under the blanket as well.
âYou awake babe?â Tae asked softly as he entered the dimly lit bedroom.
âBarely... Ugh... Can you please let me sleep a little more?â Ryujin tried her very best to sound natural, but her heart was pounding so hard it was deafening.
âOf course. I got some stuff you should take though-â
âNo! I mean... Please leave me be for now. I appreciate you though! Iâll be up soon okay?â She stammered dismissively. If her boyfriend saw her now, there would be no way to explain the shiny globs of cum that still covered her. There was also the issue of getting Junho out of her bedroom without him noticing. She had to think fast.
âAlright. Well Iâll check on you soon,â Tae said.
âOh, um... Babe? Could you please check my car for my phone charger?â She improvised.
âYou can just use mine-â
âNo, I need mine please,â she insisted, not sure how to justify it.
âUh, okay then,â the boyfriend chuckled. âIâll be right back.â
Ryujin held her breath and waited for the apartment to clear. The second the front door closed, she threw the bedding off of her and scrambled towards the foot of the bed. She felt something wrap tightly around her ankle, and she was jerked back towards her roommate, who wrapped his large arms around her.
âDude!â She yelled as he groped her luscious, sticky tits.
âRound two?â He asked, grinning mischievously and dropping a hand down to her unprotected mound.
âYouâve got to be kidding me! Get the fuck out of my room!â She demanded as she tried to wriggle free from his hold. His fingers were already inside of her again, rummaging around in her still sopping wet pussy. âSeriously! Nghhh-Please!â
âIâll go, but I want to hear you admit how much you loved being my naughty little cum canvas,â he grumbled into her ear while stroking her clit and pinching her nipple.
âHnnngh... Please... Heâs gonna be back any minute-â
âSo say it. I donât care if he sees us.â
âYouâre such a-ffffuck-ing ass-ohhh...â Ryujin knew she had no choice. âFine... I Ioved it...â She had to get away from him before her brain decided the growing climax would be worth the risk.
âLoved what?â
âUgh... Being your-Being... covered in all your... cum...â She admitted it shamefully.
âIt was my pleasure.â Junho immediately released her and strode out of the room, fully naked and as smug as ever. Ryujin followed soon after, ducking into the bathroom and jumping into the shower. Before even attempting to scrub the semen off of her skin, her hands were between her legs. Her sex ached for more attention from her roommate, and she lost count of how many times she got herself off under the scalding water, the potent flavor of his salty seed still on her tongue.
******
Ryujin was sipping a hot, bitter coffee in the back room of a small clothing store, mentally preparing to face another tedious shift of her part-time gig. It was an early weekday morning, and she would likely be responsible for the more boring parts of the job given that there were seldom any customers at this time of day. She could faintly hear her bubbly manager, Amber, chatting away with someone out on the floor, which was surprising given that they had just opened the shop. After tossing the styrofoam cup into the trash can, Ryujin yawned and opened the door to see what all the fuss was about.
Amber, from the looks of it, was in her natural habitat, flirting with some guy who had no doubt accidentally wandered into her trap. The young woman was very well put together, always dawning flawless makeup, in contrast to Ryujin, who was more likely to let her natural beauty shine through. Amber couldnât help herself around attractive men, and had a reputation for having flings at the drop of a dime. Ryujin watched her touch the tall manâs bicep as she giggled about whatever it was they were discussing. As she drew nearer, she felt as though she recognized that bicep. Then the man turned to her, and to her surprise, it was Junho.
âHey, Ryujin!â He greeted her cheerfully.
It took her a minute to process his sudden presence in her usually private world of the store. âH-Hi. What are you doing here?â
âI was going to try out this new gym that opened down the street, and then I remembered you mentioned that this was the place you worked at,â he explained, crossing his arms and smiling widely.
Amber appeared a little dismayed that the attention had suddenly shifted away from her. âYou guys know each other?â
âYeah! We live together!â Junho answered.
âWha-Oh, so this is your boyfriend?â She inquired, clearly disappointed to learn that her chances with him had suddenly plummeted.
âNo... heâs just our roommate.â Ryujin replied quickly, starting to worry that Junho would reveal something about the complicated nature of their relationship. It was only two days ago that she had his big cock down her throat before he shot his cum all over her.
âOh good, so youâre single!â Amber flashed her perfect teeth and planted her palm on his broad chest. She did not know the meaning of subtle.
âThatâs right,â he chuckled, realizing an opportunity was developing before his eyes. âCanât tie this guy down,â Junho said jokingly, flexing his muscles and getting an easy laugh out of his new fan.
âWell you can tie me down...â Amber commented seductively. âGive me your number, hot stuff.â
Ryujin rolled her eyes and turned to leave the sickening interaction.
âSee you at home, Ryujin!â Junho called out to her.
âWhatever,â she replied under her breath, grabbing her clipboard off of the counter to start her daily tasks. Ryujin tried to focus on her job, but couldnât ignore the negative emotions that were rising to the surface. The image of her slutty managerâs hands all over her roommate plagued her mind. First of all, he and I are not dating... I have a boyfriend... They can fuck like rabbits for all I care... The thought did not sit well with her. Ryujin must have muttered the phrase âWho caresâ to herself a thousand times throughout the day in an attempt to distance herself from the feelings.
As she readied herself to end the shift, Ryujin noticed Amber smiling ear to ear while she tapped away at her phone. âOh my God, Ryujin! How come you never told me about this guy? Heâs so fucking hot. And guess what? Weâre going out tonight!â
Ryujinâs heart sank to her stomach. Sheâd been secretly hoping that Junho would never actually entertain the idea of spending time with this woman, but apparently she was wrong. They were already set to meet up that night, and knowing them, would almost certainly end up hooking up. She wondered what that would mean for her plans, a night she was meant to spend in his bed. Ryujin tried her best to act naturally, but couldnât hold back her opposition. âOh really? After just meeting him?â
âWell, yeah! He seemed super into me, donât you think?â
âI guess... Heâs kind of a jerk though. You might not want to waste your time,â Ryujin explained, secretly ashamed that she was meddling in their plans.
âHe seemed nice enough to me,â Amber said dismissively. She wasnât about to let her coworker rain on her parade. âAnd that body... Mmm! I bet he has a big dick too. Iâm pretty sure I saw some serious bulge going on down there.â
âI dunno. Small dick energy if you ask me,â Ryujin muttered.
âWell I guess Iâll find out soon!â Amber winked. âWhat do you think I should wear?â
âIâm sure youâll think of something.â Ryujin gathered her things and strolled out of the store in a hurry, her jealousy hitting a tipping point.
******
That night as she and Tae ate dinner, Ryujin found it nearly impossible to focus on the conversation with her boyfriend. She kept eyeing the front door, hoping that Junho would show up alone, having canceled his date. She hated herself for letting the scenario affect her so much. The complicated feelings were a harsh reminder that she had gone way too far with her roommate, and that she needed some normalcy to return to her recently chaotic life.
After cleaning up, the couple cuddled up on the couch to watch a movie. It wasnât long before the door to the apartment swung open, and Junho noisily entered, followed closely by a giggling Amber. Ryujin audibly groaned, but luckily the sounds of the film covered up her show of disappointment. As the newcomers shuffled towards the bedroom, Ryujinâs gaze met her roommateâs and the eye contact lingered for an extra beat. She wasnât sure what she wanted to convey, and her conflicted feelings resulted in a mostly blank expression. He simply grinned, and continued leading his date to his room. Amber waved and said hello to the two of them, winking at Ryujin before disappearing into the private space.
âWow, just like old times, eh?â Tae said to his girlfriend, clearly elated for the disruption in the nightâs sleeping arrangement. âHe hasnât brought a girl home in a while. Guess that means we can stay together tonight.â
âYeah...â Ryujin was distracted, knowing what was about to happen on the other side of the wall.
âBabe?â Tae lightly shook her.
âYeah! Itâs good!â She agreed simply, snapping out of it. Nothing positive would come out of eavesdropping, she decided. This is good, she told herself. This is normal. Normal is good. She pressed herself into her boyfriendâs hold and returned her attention to the movie, determined to accept the circumstances and enjoy a regular night of being a faithful girlfriend like she was supposed to. Ryujinâs new resolve soothed her conscience, and she felt at peace for the next few minutes.
As the on screen entertainment transitioned into a more silent scene, noises could be heard coming from Junhoâs room. âOh! Oh! Yes! Fuuuck Yes!â Amber suddenly cried out. Ryujin and Tae pretended not to hear it, hoping the movie sounds would pick back up again soon. âOh my God! Ah! Yeah! Fuck!â It was hard to ignore the womanâs yelps of pleasure, and Ryujin found her mind wandering. It sounded like Junho was fucking her hard, and she could picture his toned body slamming into her. She wondered what position they were in. Is it missionary, or is he taking her from behind? The girlfriend secretly hoped there was no passion, just raw sex. The jealous feelings returned with a vengeance as she was forced to listen to her ditsy manager get railed by her roommateâs big dick. She was getting to experience it in a way Ryujin hadnât, but that was by her own choice, she reminded herself. She wasnât supposed to wonder what his massive cock would feel like inside of her. Despite all of these mixed emotions, the thought of it in action in the next room was turning her on.
âHoy fucking shiiiiiit!â One last exclamation could be heard before the speakers finally covered up the debauchery. Ryujin realized that she could channel her arousal back into the right direction, and placed her hand on her boyfriendâs crotch. She kissed his neck and lightly rubbed him in an attempt to bring his member to life.
âI need you to fuck me,â she whispered into Taeâs ear, smiling as she felt his cock hardening. He turned his head and kissed her, feebly grabbing at her tit.
âWhatâs gotten into you?â He asked, grinning at his ravenous girlfriend. âIs it...â His eyes darted in the direction of Junhoâs room. âI thought you hated those... sounds.â
âI do, but I just-ugh. Just shut up and fuck me okay?â Ryujin started hastily unzipping his shorts.
âRight here? Babe we-â Taeâs hesitation shattered as his eager girlfriend fished his erection out and took its entire length into her warm mouth. His mouth hung agape in shock as she slid him in and out of her, twisting the saliva-coated base of his cock in her fist. The couple rarely dabbled in oral sex, and here she was enthusiastically enveloping his entire dick. âOhhh, that feels so good babe...â
Ryujin knew he had a habit of finishing quickly, so her time was limited. She slowed her movements gradually, making eye contact, and released his spongy head with a loud pop. Without a word, the horny young woman took her boyfriendâs hand and pulled him to his feet, leading him to the bedroom. Amber could be heard moaning again as they exited the living room. Ryujin pushed Tae onto his back, removed her shorts, and climbed on top of him. She slid her thong to the side, and just before impaling herself, he protested, âWait! Condom!â
âBabe, itâs okay, just pull out,â she pleaded, the heat of the moment slipping through her fingers.
âNo, it wonât feel safe. Sorry, just a sec.â Tae slid out from under her and grabbed a packet from his drawer. He fumbled with it for a moment, and had to jerk himself off a bit to get fully hard again.
Ryujin waited patiently, but knew the likelihood of him actually satisfying her was slim to none. She could still faintly hear her manager squealing with delight across the apartment, and wondered if she had already cum for Junho. It was probably a matter of how many times, rather than if it had happened, she thought. âTae, please get over here and give it to me,â she requested again.
âOkay, ready!â He took his place on his back again, and Ryujin climbed on top of him, finally sinking a hard cock into her depths. It felt great, and they both moaned at the joint stimulation. She put her hands on his chest and began gyrating her hips, finding the rhythm she needed to start building the pleasure. As she rode him, her mind kept traveling to the other bedroom, and she couldnât prevent the intrusive thought of how different it must feel to be stuffed full of her roommateâs much larger tool. The thought of that monstrosity stretching her open was too wickedly alluring to ignore at the moment, and she allowed the fantasy of being with Junho instead to consume her attention.
He would probably have his big, strong hands all over me right now while I bounced on his fat cock. Hell, heâd probably throw me off of him so that he could have his way with me first. The daydream was fueling Ryujinâs arousal to new heights, and she was bucking into her boyfriend harder and harder.
Tae stared at his sexy girlfriend in awe - her perfectly toned tummy and full, perky tits dancing above him - he could hardly believe she was his. Her sultry expression was one of pure lust. She looked so cute and determined to get off with him. It was all too much, and he felt his climax already rearing its head. âSo good... Oh...â He began tensing up.
Ryujin knew the telltale signs of her boyfriendâs completion, and quickly stopped grinding him. âNot yet babe!â She lifted herself off of him, but it was too late, and she watched in disappointment as his dick twitched and spewed a few globs of semen into the condom.
âFuuuck... Iâm sorry...â He muttered shamefully.
âItâs okay... Itâs okay... Just... Can you lick me?â Ryujin fell onto her back and spread her legs, her fingers teasing her clit. There was no way she was giving up this orgasm.
âSure!â Tae was relieved that he could still help his girlfriend get to the finish line, and crawled to her soaking pussy for a taste. He clumsily ran his tongue around the area, and jabbed at her entrance a few times. âMmm is that good?â
âItâs... Fine. Yeah, just keep licking right there... Mhmm...â She closed her eyes and focused on stimulating her clit. His tongue was better than nothing, but it was night and day when compared to what Junho had done to her. God... The way he held me down and ate me like I was his last meal... Groping me and making me squirm while forcing me to admit that I was his cheating slut...
âNgh! Ohhhhh...â Ryujin moaned while picturing her roommate dominating her. She rubbed herself with fervor and ground her sex into Taeâs face. She was almost there. âBeg me to fuck you.â Junhoâs words rang in her mind. âPlease fuck me,â she whimpered under her breath. A scalding wave of pleasure washed over her as she orgasmed, her jaw dropping and back arching. She pressed firmly onto her clit, tightly trapping her fingers and her boyfriend between her quivering thighs. She drew breath slowly and shakily as the endorphins ran their course, eventually subsiding and leaving her limp and sweaty.
âHoly shit, babe... I donât think Iâve ever seen you cum that hard,â Tae said admiringly, with a dash of pride at thinking he was solely responsible.
âYeah... Sometimes...â She cooed, still lost in the aftermath.
âWell, goodnight.â He kissed her lips.
âGoodnight...â Ryujin drifted to sleep effortlessly, even though the sounds of her roommate and coworker still going at it could be heard in the distance.
******
Ryujin woke the next morning before the sunlight had even pierced her bedroom window. With an anxious pit in her stomach, she checked her work schedule and was reminded that she was scheduled to open the store with Amber again that morning. She contemplated calling out sick, dreading the awkward interaction that would surely occur upon her arrival, but decided to be brave and face the day. She quietly slipped out of her room, carefully listening for any indication that the woman was still in her apartment. All was silent, so she hopped into the shower and hurriedly readied herself to leave.
She tip-toed through the front door, relieved that no one else had seemed to have stirred yet, and left for work. Ryujin spent her short commute mentally rehearsing what she might say to her manager, or how to avoid her. Undoubtedly she would want to gush about her experience with Junho, which Ryujin was not ready to hear. She had gotten enough of an earful about it already. Despite arriving quite a bit early, she was surprised to see Amberâs car was already in the parking lot.
âHey, Amber,â she said, reluctantly greeting the woman. Might as well try to play nice, she figured.
âHey...â Amber replied back, with no enthusiasm and a hint of melancholy.
Ryujin raised an eyebrow. This was not at all how she expected this interaction to go. âEverything okay?â
âYeah, Iâm fine...â Amber was avoiding eye contact and fiddling with a tablet.
âNot gonna lie... I kind of expected you to be in a better mood this morning,â Ryujin stated, now filled with curiosity.
âHeh...â
âYou sure nothingâs wrong?â
âUgh... No big deal. You were right though, heâs kind of a jerk.â Amber said, finally looking up from her arbitrary task.
âOh.â Ryujin wasnât sure what to say next. What could Junho have possibly done for her to have this reaction, especially after a night of what sounded like amazing sex. âIt sounded like... I mean, werenât you guys...â
âHeâs a great fuck if thatâs what youâre getting at. Like, crazy good...â
âThen what happened? Just his general attitude got to you, or?â
âNo... I can deal with that...â Amber muttered, avoiding eye contact again.
âWell?â Ryujin couldnât let it go. The mystery was too captivating at that point.
Amber turned bright red and sighed. âFine. He... Donât tell anyone, but... He said your name. Right in the middle of what I thought was the best sex of all time, he called me Ryujin.â
âOh... Iâm-Sorry...â Ryujin placed her hand on her coworkerâs shoulder awkwardly, unsure of how to react outwardly, but well aware that she couldnât allow her true emotions to escape her just yet. She was equally shocked and elated to hear of her roommateâs mistake.
âItâs fine. It was just a stupid hook up. Iâll get over it,â Amber insisted in a show of maturity.
âThat sucks though. Iâm sorry that happened.â Ryujin tried to reassure her.
âThanks... That guy is obviously into you, Ryujin. I was picking up on some vibes when he was here yesterday too, but I guess I didnât want to believe in them.â
âNo... Iâm sure it was just a mindless slip of the tongue,â she said, not believing her own words. âBesides, I have a boyfriend.â
âWell, I donât wanna tell you how to live your life, girl, but for your sake I hope your man fucks half as good as that stud.â
The women did not discuss the subject any further, and began independently getting their daily tasks done. About an hour later, Ryujin was organizing a shelf when she heard unintelligible voices conversing, followed by Amber loudly announcing, âI donât wanna talk about it. Just drop it, okay? No harm done.â She peered around the corner and saw her manager, blushing and walking towards her. Junho was behind her, looking a little less cool and collected than usual. âItâs just embarrassing,â Amber whispered as she passed her and headed for the exit. âNowâs a good time to take my lunch break.â
Ryujin approached the tall man with a spring in her step, more than a little excited to see him after hearing what had happened. âCanât get enough of her, eh?â
Junho chuckled strangely, âJust wanted to say hi I guess.â He wasnât sure if the women had discussed the fumble, and preferred his roommate knew nothing about it.
Is he being awkward? Ryujin wondered, suppressing a smile at his rare show of vulnerability. She was looking forward to fishing the information out of him. âLooks like she didnât wanna talk. What could that be about?â
He shrugged. âDunno...â
âHm, guess she wasnât impressed,â she teased, glancing down at his package. She decided it was more fun that he didnât know that Amber had spilled the beans to her already.
âI think you know that thatâs basically impossible,â he defended himself, straightening his posture.
âHow would I know that?â Ryujin asked, subconsciously taking a step towards him.
âIf you donât by now, you will in due time,â he replied, closing the distance further.
âWell if you keep bringing random girls home, there wonât be a lot of time for that, will there?â She knew what her comment was suggesting, and worried that it might have been too forward.
âTrue.â He said simply.
Ryujinâs heart rate quickened as she took in his scent and felt his eyes scanning her body. She considered the space around her, quickly observing the emptiness of the store, and the security camera that they were in partial view of. âSo what can I help you with today? You mentioned you were looking to try on some new pants?â She aimlessly picked up a pair of jeans that were conveniently resting on the shelf beside them, and offered them to him.
âYou think these will be a good fit?â He asked, seamlessly slipping into the role of the unfamiliar customer.
âYeah! Let me show you to the dressing rooms,â she announced. As soon as the words left her lips, she knew what was about to happen. Her eyes darted around again to confirm. There was no one in sight, and she knew for a fact that there werenât any cameras in the dressing room area, including the common space where the employees would often spend time watching over the rooms and organizing the abandoned garments. She led Junho across the room and into the private alcove. âHere we are, sir,â she said in her professional customer service voice, holding the door open for him and feeling a tingle of excitement as his hard body brushed past her.
âI think Iâm gonna need some help, miss,â he eyed her knowingly.
âOh? What else can I do for you?â Ryujinâs pulse quickened in anticipation.
âIâm just a little sore from the gym, and was hoping you could help me out of these joggers.â
âHmm, I donât think that sort of thing is allowed here-Ah!â She was interrupted as Junhoâs hand grabbed her slender waist and pulled her into the room. He aggressively pushed the door closed and his large frame pinned her against the wall of the tiny room. Her body was trapped between the cool partition and his warm chest. âI could get into a lot of troub-â Ryujin was once again interrupted, his lips mashing into hers, and his tongue forcing its way into her mouth.
âMmmm...â She moaned into the kiss as her defenses vanished, and she offered her tongue to him. His strong hands slowly ran down her back and to her ass, which he then squeezed and used to lift her off of the ground. Still pinned against the wall, she was now at his height, and wrapped her legs around his waist. He kissed her firmly and passionately, and she mirrored his intensity. They were basically devouring each other in the cramped space, as if they had both been starved for affection. Ryujin could feel his hardness swelling rapidly against her, like it was threatening to rip through their clothing and penetrate her. She squeezed him into her more tightly, enhancing the friction between their wanting genitals.
Ryujin was the first to break the kiss, panting heavily, and dropped her leg to the ground, which caused Junho to let her down. She could feel her pussy was already soaking wet from the encounter. She found herself wishing to please him in that moment; to prove that she knew how to satisfy him. The young girlfriend dropped to her knees and started to tug at her hung roommateâs waistband until his massive erection sprung out before her eyes. She took his rock hard cock in her soft hand and gave the tip a small peck.
âGod, you look like such a hot little slut with my big dick on your face,â Junho admired, resting his meaty appendage along the bridge of her nose, and gliding his smooth shaft ever so slightly along her skin. He cupped her jaw in his palm. âDid you miss me last night?â
âNot as much as you missed me,â she replied, sticking out her tongue and licking up the length of his cock. Junho chuckled and allowed her to take control as she flicked the underside of his head with her tongue and pushed her pursed lips against it. Ryujin slowly allowed him inside, taking in his fat piece of meat one centimeter at a time. At about four inches or so, he hit the back of her throat, and she held him there while her tongue snaked back and forth. She used her hand to spread her saliva down the rest of his length, lightly jerking the base while she bobbed her head on the third that she could fit.
Junho inhaled through his teeth and groaned in pleasure as his roommate serviced him. He took a moment to appreciate the wild turn of events that had gotten him into Ryujinâs lovely mouth that morning. He hadnât been sure what would come of confronting the women after what had transpired the night before, but heâd felt a strong inclination to show up and figure it out. This outcome was about as well as it could have possibly gone for him, and he allowed himself a minute to get lost in her bright, determined eyes. âWhoofff... Youâre getting good at this, baby.â He battled the compulsion to increase the intensity and start fucking her face again, deciding to let her continue proving herself while he relaxed this time around.
Ryujin pulled him out of her mouth with a slurp, and jerked him off with both hands, smiling with her tongue out. âYou think?â In no mood to pretend she wasnât enjoying herself, she genuinely wanted to hear more praise from him. She knew she wasnât particularly experienced sucking cock, especially when compared with her slutty manager, but secretly hoped she possessed an innate talent that would impress Junho. She had more or less let him have his way during their previous encounter, but she was now in the driverâs seat, and didnât want to disappoint.
âDefinitely... Youâre gonna make me cum if you keep this up,â he encouraged.
The cheating girlfriend slid the throbbing dick back into her mouth, pleased to hear she was succeeding. She did feel a sense of urgency, remembering where she was, and that Amber could come back at any time. More risky still, a customer might quietly drop in, and theyâd probably hear the obscene squelching sounds coming from the small dressing room as she began pumping Junhoâs cock with increased enthusiasm.
âAhh... Fuck yeah... Thatâs my good little cocksucker... Is it making you all wet to be on your knees like this in public?â He brushed a strand of hair out of her face.
âMhmmm,â she answered with a slight nod. She couldnât believe how turned on the whole thing was making her. If sheâd been told a month ago that sheâd be blowing Junho at some random clothing store, she would consider it impossible. The risk of getting caught was another spicy factor that only made the interaction even hotter. Ryujin caught a glimpse of herself in the mirror beside them, noticing her watery eyes and the thick rope of saliva dangling from her chin while her lips stretched to accept the thick manhood. She truly felt like his little cocksucker, and the aching need in her pussy insisted that it was the way to be.
âFuck, Ryujin... Iâm getting close,â Junho mumbled.
âGllgh. Gllgh. Gllgh.â Ryujin gagged on her roommateâs big dick as it jabbed the back of her throat repeatedly. She realized she would have to swallow his entire load, as she was in no position to be glazed in cum at the moment. Her shift had barely started, and she would have to work the next several hours in whatever state he left her in. Ryujin began mentally preparing herself to handle what would undoubtedly be a massive volume of semen.
âOh fuck... Just like that, slut...â
âGllgh. Gllgh. Gllgh.â She could feel him throbbing against her tongue.
âOh my fucking... Mmmm!â Junho groaned in pleasure as his cock jumped in Ryujinâs tight, wet mouth. A viscous string of salty-sweet seed splashed the back of her throat, and she gagged at the unexpected force of it. Clamping her lips firmly around him, she managed to swallow just in time for another shot of cum to quickly fill the little space there was. She drank it down as swiftly as possible while his big cock pulsed wildly and relentlessly ejaculated into her. Ryujin surprised herself as she managed to mostly contain his impossibly heavy dose, only a small amount dribbling from the corners of her lips.
Junho watched the young girlfriend in a daze as she gulped down the last of his seed, and began sucking and licking his cock clean automatically. She continued to exceed his expectations, and he once again privately counted his blessings. He fantasized about keeping her in that room with him for the rest of the day, or at least for long enough to finally fuck her. That would have to wait, he decided, and he took her hand in his, lifting her to her feet and pulling her against him.
Ryujin lovingly licked away the last remnants of cum from his barely-deflated shaft. His potent flavor overwhelmed all of her senses, and she thought about how many nights sheâd seen all of his fluids go to waste. This time, every drop was traveling down to her belly, which, for reasons she didnât understand, was intensely erotic for her. She felt Junhoâs strong hand take hers, and before she knew it, found herself in his arms again. He kissed her firmly, and she reciprocated, the taste of his tongue mixing into the already intoxicating Junho cocktail she was experiencing. She felt his hands roam down her back and slip into her pants. He squeezed her plump ass as their tongues swirled around each other, and her pussy drooled in anticipation. Her roommateâs thick finger traveled further down, disregarding the barrier of her panties, and tunneled its way to her soaking lips.
âOhhh... Pleeease...â She moaned into his mouth as he lightly traced lines up and down her slick entrance. The last bit of caution she had regarding the setting melted away, as she grinded her sticky pussy into his fingers. Then he withdrew. Slowly, but deliberately, he retracted, and with one last kiss, left her without his touch.
âIâll take care of you tonight,â he said seductively, and turned to leave.
Ryujin spent the next few minutes composing herself, mustering up every ounce of self-control not to finish herself off. She rehearsed a ânormalâ smile in the mirror, and strode back out into the store, the taste of her roommate still on her lips.
Ryujin returned home in the evening after a long day of work followed by shopping for materials she would need for her upcoming university classes. She entered the shared apartment to find Tae and Junho about to take a shot of alcohol.
âHeyyy! Just in time!â Her boyfriend, looking more clean-cut than he had in a while, greeted her cheerfully. âGuess what, babe? I landed a job!â
Ryujinâs eyes widened in surprise. âNo way! Thatâs great! I didnât even know you were-â
âI wanted to surprise you,â he explained, handing her a shot glass. âIâve been in contact with them and had the in-person interview this morning, and they got back to me just a few hours later. The stars just aligned on this one!â
âThatâs so awesome! Congrats!â She exclaimed, legitimately happy for him. The trio gulped down their celebratory liquid and enjoyed a couple rounds of a simple drinking game. Tae described his interview in more detail, and the others learned that the new job was a step down from his previous one, but still seemed decent and stable. Anything was better than the sedentary life he had been living for the past few months, Ryujin decided.
As the drinks flowed, the elephant in the room grew larger, until Tae finally broached the subject. âSo I guess this means we can finally go back to normal, right?â He asked the group suddenly.
Ryujin waited to see if Junho would respond, and he did. âEventually, yeah. Letâs wait to see that first paycheck though, eh big guy?â He chuckled, slapping his friend on the back. âBesides, I already paid for this month.â The handsome man smirked at his friendâs girlfriend knowingly, and she felt a tingle between her legs. She had just gulped down all of his cum that very morning, and shuddered at the thought of what he was planning to do to her that night.
âWell it wonât be much longer now. I start next week, so expect that money soon. We need to put this shit behind us,â he said firmly, surprising the others with his sudden boost in confidence. âBe right back.â
As Tae headed towards the bathroom, Junho wrapped an arm around Ryujin, and pulled her against him. âI guess that means we better make every second count,â he muttered in her ear as his hand roamed to her chest, squeezing her pliant flesh.
âStop!â She whispered, squirming in his strong embrace. Both hands were now roughly groping her tits, and she could feel her nipples hardening beneath the thin fabric of her top. Her roommateâs warm breath bathed her neck before his teeth lightly scraped it. âJunho, seriously...â Ryujin protested as the dangerous sensations of her bodyâs consent began to spread in her loins.
As he kissed and nibbled her soft skin, Junho could actually feel her pulse quickening. The toilet flushed, and he slowly withdrew from the petite woman. âWhereâs a dressing room when you need one?â He joked, smiling at her as she quickly composed herself and fixed her shirt.
âYouâre such a fucking perv,â she chastised her roommate just before Tae returned to the couch. The game continued, and Junho took every chance to steal a feel of Ryujin, from subtly bumping his body into hers, to outright groping her when his friend was distracted. The man clearly had an appetite, and his risky advances were making her horny. At one point she let her gaze linger on the prominent bulge in his pants, and felt the urge to climb into his lap so he could put his hands all over her. After playing around a while longer, Tae announced he was ready for bed, and held his hand out to his girlfriend invitingly.
âMmm wrong night, buddy.â Junho pointed out.
Tae shot him a look of disapproval. âIâm not going to sleep just yet. Will you join me, babe?â
âI see...â the cocky man laughed. âEnjoy, you two. But send her to my room when youâre done,â he instructed, winking.
Ryujin shouldâve been used to his boldness by now, but still found herself slightly shocked that he would make such a suggestive comment in front of Tae. She rose to her feet and followed her boyfriend, thinking about how slutty it made her feel to be ordered around between the two bedrooms, and noticing that it turned her on.
As soon as they closed the door, Tae kissed her, and started removing her clothes. Ryujin was slightly taken aback by his newfound ability to take charge, but was pleasantly surprised. He pushed her to the bed, and rolled a condom onto his modest erection. He mounted his girlfriend, spearing her with his hardness, and began pumping away. âWow, youâre so wet already,â he beamed. âMy good news has you all excited, eh?â She nodded in response, focused on trying to get into the moment. While she was undoubtedly happy for his success, the moistness in her pussy was caused by Junhoâs repeated sneaky touches throughout the night.
After nearly ten minutes of actually decent sex, compared to their recent attempts together, Tae ejaculated into his protection, and slumped on top of her. Ryujin had almost orgasmed, but ended up faking a small one as he finished. She thought about completing the job herself, or asking him to eat her out like the last time they were intimate, but decided to enjoy the restful moment with him instead. Heâs too tired anyway, she rationalized to herself, refusing to acknowledge that perhaps she was saving herself for what would inevitably happen in the next bedroom.
The young woman lay there in silence, listening to her boyfriendâs deep breathing. She did feel guilty. Sheâd coexisted with the uncomfortable emotion for a while now, locking it away when she could, but forced to face it in the quiet moments. Whatever it was that had developed between her and Junho, it was going to come to an end. It always had to. Knowing it was a temporary thing made the guilt easier to deal with. Ryujin felt that her future self could move on and accept that she and her roommate were just getting something out of their systems during this odd time in their lives. It also helped to remind herself that they had managed to keep themselves from going all the way, and had not actually had sex, which had to count for something.
Taeâs breath slowed to a dull snore, and Ryujin scooted out from under the sleeping man. It was an Junho night, and she had to finish out the agreement. She slipped into a thong and baggy t-shirt before tiptoeing towards the bedroom at the other end of the apartment. The butterflies in her stomach were fluttering about as she contemplated what might happen in there that night. Will he be waiting for me with his big hard dick in hand? Will he make me suck it again, and cum down my throat? Maybe heâll lick my pussy. Ryujin grew hornier the more she thought about the vast menu of dirty acts they might indulge in. She reassured herself that as long as they didnât push the boundaries any further, and were committed to stopping altogether soon, she could enjoy herself.
She opened the door and was surprised to find that the light was off, and her roommate was seemingly asleep already. How long had I been daydreaming? She wondered, trying to suppress her disappointment as she crawled into her side of the bed. âYou asleep?â She whispered, lightly brushing his shoulder, but he did not react. Still in an aroused state, she lay motionless for several minutes, enjoying the comfortable mattress and pleasant fragrance of Junhoâs room. A setting that had once been so new and surreal was quite familiar now, and she slowly drifted to sleep with the thought that it would be one of the last remaining nights she would experience it.
******
The first thing that Ryujin noticed as she regained consciousness was a throbbing sensation in her pelvic region, and that her pussy felt soaking wet. As she contemplated her dark surroundings, she realized that Junho was spooning her, and clutching her tightly against him. His broad forearm was resting snugly across her torso, and his hand had gone up her shirt. A tingle of pleasure shot from her chest to her sex as he twisted her erect nipple. He was awake, and he had her small frame completely constricted in his hold. Ryujin felt a warmth on her pussy, and gasped at the sudden awareness of what was happening. Junhoâs big, hard cock was rubbing back and forth across her creamy folds, steadily tracing a line along her entrance, and making her gush as it made contact with her clit.
âWh-What are you doing?â She asked, her voice cracking.
âGiving you what you need, obviously.â He replied, his stubbly chin scratching the skin behind her ear.
âBut, you canât-â She argued, feeling utterly helpless in his powerful clutch. She wondered what had happened to her underwear, which had apparently been removed. The forbidden friction between their genitals felt so wickedly good, and her body craved more.
âCanât what? Do this?â He thrust his hips ever so slightly forward and his thick head prodded against her tight entrance, threatening to break the seal.
âNO!â Ryujin shouted. Her mind was racing now. Is this really about to happen? Is his huge dick about to stretch me open? The intrusive thought had bombarded her mind for so long now, and it was on the brink of becoming a reality. Junhoâs large hand snaked up her chest, through the opening of her shirt, and clamped over her mouth. âMmm!â She half-moaned, half-protested into his meaty palm. Feeling even more powerless than before, she writhed against him, able to move just enough that his cock slipped out of the crater and slid along her slippery slit. It kept finding its way back though, and pushed into her barrier a bit harder each time.
âDonât worry. Youâre going to feel so amazing in a second. Just give in,â he murmured, his words equal parts titillating and threatening.
Ryujin felt like she was about to be devoured by a python as she struggled against her roommate. She was completely at his mercy and was realizing that she was not going to be able to stop him. Is he even wearing a condom? She doubted heâd bothered to use protection, and a shiver ran down her spine at the idea that he was about to stuff his bare dick into her. It was something sheâd never experienced, and made her feel even more vulnerable than she already was.
âYouâre not doing anything wrong. Youâre half asleep, and for all you know Iâm your boyfriend. Just lay there and take it like a good little slut, okay?â Junho thrusted his throbbing cock more firmly still, and Ryujinâs tight hole began to stretch around the large, invading circumference. Somehow his twisted suggestion helped her relax slightly. She wasnât the one pushing things further, and thus didnât have to be responsible for it. She knew the logic was deeply flawed, but her brain was wholly flooded with desire and not capable of thinking straight. She could feel his fat, bulbous head sinking further into her one painfully slow centimeter at a time, and her pussy oozed lubrication to prepare for him.
Junhoâs mushroom tip finally crossed the threshold, and it was suddenly buried completely, her taut walls enclosing it. As shallow as he was, it already felt like nothing Ryujin had ever experienced, and she braced herself for what would come next. Instead of further penetrating though, he went the other direction, slowly pulling out of her clinging pinkness.
He groaned quietly in her ear before pushing into her again, taking care to move as slowly as possible to allow her sex time to warm up to his. His roommateâs warm, gripping cunt felt even tighter than he imagined it would, and he was determined to enjoy every single fraction of a second as he breached her defenses. The sensation on the sensitive ridge of his crown as he passed into her again was euphoric, and heâd only barely sampled her surface. Junho felt his balls tighten as he fought the urge to drill into her further, managing his pace with all the control he could muster.
Ryujinâs entire body was ablaze. Her roommateâs careful teasing was breaking her will one painfully shallow thrust at a time. The need to have his fat cock fill more of her was becoming unbearable, and she began involuntarily bucking her hips back into him. Her efforts were mostly fruitless though, as he held her in place with unyielding rigidity. Her weak attempts to capture more of him only accomplished a dull feeling of shame as her deafening lust drowned out the last bits of reluctance she had left.
A thin layer of sweat was forming upon both of them as the heated interaction between their bodies went on. Junho continued to edge his tip in and out of her entrance, and could feel her juices coating him more and more, the viscous liquid running down the veiny surface area of his shaft. He felt her struggles to escape slowly morph into struggles to take in more of his cock, which wouldâve prompted a triumphant grin if his face wasnât already occupied with absolute pleasure.
âGod, you feel incredible. Do you think your hot little pussy is ready for more of me?â He relaxed his grip on her jaw, allowing her the opportunity to reply as he continued to tease her.
âNggghhh...â Ryujin couldnât take it anymore. The rational part of her brain that had reaffirmed how wrong it was to be messing around with her roommate was lost in a thick soup of arousal. She was going to be fucked by Junho. At that moment, there was nothing else in the world that mattered to her. He was going to take her whether she wanted it or not, and she privately accepted that she wanted it more than anything. She shuddered in his arms; the thought of his monster cock filling her up completely was her singular focus.
âBeg me for more you sexy little slut,â he commanded.
âFuuuuck...â She moaned. Despite how badly she wanted him, to actually say it out loud was too depraved.
Junho ceased his thrusting after pulling out of her, his throbbing hardness resting against her clit. âIâm going to make you feel so fucking good. Just say it, and Iâll handle the rest...â
âUggghh! Mmmpfff!â Ryujin tried desperately to wiggle her bottom into him, but could only slather her drenched lips against his skin. It wasnât enough. Nothing but his entire, juicy dick fucking her would ever be enough. âFuck! Fuck me! PLEASE FUCK ME!â As the words left her lips, her creamy opening was parted and her depths were stretched around him as he tunneled into her. âOHHHHH!â Her mind felt like it was exploding as every surface of her tight pussy was assaulted by his thick, throbbing cock. It forced its way deeper and deeper for what felt like an eternity, until it battered against her cervix. âFUCK!â She was absolutely stuffed full of Junho, and it felt like nothing she couldâve ever described before. She could perceive every subtle contour of his naked member pulsing inside of her, his skin against hers with no protective barrier.
Then he pulled out, swiftly and smoothly, the entire length passing through her again in reverse. She gasped sharply for air, just in time for him to plunge back into her. His hips crashed into bare ass with a loud slap, sending ripples throughout her curves as his invading cock sent shockwaves throughout the deepest parts of her. âFUHUHUHHHCK!â Ryujinâs muscles tensed up, and she was suddenly aware that a massive orgasm was about to consume her. âYES! YES! YESSSS!â
Junho unleashed his third powerful stroke, and Ryujin let out a guttural moan as she came the hardest she ever had in her life. As her body was flooded with endorphins, she writhed against him in total pleasure. He remained firmly planted inside of her, and she could feel her pussy spasming and clenching around him. She felt as though she was on a different planet as her climax rocked her body relentlessly. After floating on a cloud for a length of time that was not perceivable to her, she felt her roommateâs big cock move within her again.
With another loud crack of skin on skin impact, he thrust into her a fourth time, then a fifth. The fire that was Ryujinâs orgasm was stoked again and again as he fucked her with a steady and deliberate rhythm. âOh my FUCKING Gahhhh!â Her screams of approval trembled as he pummeled her. The most potent climax of her life also became the longest as he would not let up. She couldnât believe how incredibly intense it felt to be taken by him. She wondered if she had just discovered what sex was supposed to be like. Surely not. Surely it was exceedingly rare to feel this fucking good. She dug her fingernails into his forearm, holding on for dear life as he continued assaulting her.
Junho was utterly enthralled by his roommateâs body as he gave her his all. He was finally experiencing what heâd dreamed about for months, and it was even better than everything heâd hoped for. Her tight, creamy pussy hugged his cock perfectly as he molded her depths. The feel of her supple young body spasming in his arms, and her uncontrollable moans of pleasure were beyond encouraging. He was elated at how quickly she had taken to his dick. As he slammed into her again and again, his room was filled with the obscene sounds of their coupling. If his friend happened to be awake, he thought, there would be absolutely no hiding what was occurring. He was too wrapped up in the moment to care though, and he focused all of his attention on the gorgeous woman that he was currently inside of.
âGod... Damn... That... Pussy... Feels... Good...â Junho growled with each firm thrust into Ryujin. He had the idea to slow down for a minute; to kiss her, and to let her face him. He decided that it wasnât the time for sensual love-making though. If there was too much consent on her part, perhaps the guilt would overwhelm her, and create more of a future obstacle. In time, he planned, she would get over that, and be completely his, but he had to navigate the waters carefully. In that moment, only raw, animalistic fucking was what she needed. He would continue to take her from behind and give her an experience she would never forget.
With that thought, he stopped pumping for a moment, and lifted himself onto his knees while rotating her body, resting upon her prone form. Ryujin whimpered as he pulled out of her, her thighs still twitching slightly. There was just enough moonlight to see that her entire bottom was coated in glistening juices. Her full, round ass looked immensely appetizing as he lined up his slimy cock with her swollen pussy. He entered her slowly at first, bottoming out and savoring the return of her warm, wet embrace. âMmm... This slutty little body was made for big cock,â he grumbled as he squeezed her malleable cheeks. Junho adjusted himself into a push-up like position with his hands on her lower back, wrapping most of her narrow waist in his sizable grip.
Ryujin was still in such a daze that she was barely aware of Junho moving on top of her. She felt a sudden vast emptiness that longed to be filled again, and unintelligibly cried out for more as her body was pinned against the mattress under his considerable weight. Finally, the overwhelming sensation of being stretched around him returned, and she clamped her eyes shut to endure it. âOhhhhfff... Yes!â The new positioning felt different somehow, and her pussy gushed at the new variety of stimulation. She felt a bead of sweat dribble down the bridge of her nose before it was launched onto the pillow as Junho bucked into her from behind. âOh my GOD!â She clenched the fabric in desperation as her roommateâs big dick began pounding her again. The amount of force that was being exerted into her body was mind-blowing. She had never felt so engulfed in dominance, as if she was nothing more than a ragdoll to be fucked by this apex masculine creature. It awakened something primal in her, and she came again at the thought of it. âIâM CUMMM-OHHHH!â
âFuck yes baby... Cum all over that big cock you slut!â Junho was giving it to her at a renewed pace, his pelvis crashing into her ass again and again. Her convulsing pussy felt so incredibly good, and he groaned through the ecstasy that her responsive body was dealing him. He grabbed a fistful of her hair and pulled her upper body towards him, curving her flexible spine. He leaned back and continued to take her with him, her knees bending and bottom lifting off of the bed. With one hand on her luscious hip and the other still tangled up in her hair, he continued fucking his best friendâs girlfriend with all the strength he had.
Ryujin felt numb with pleasure from head to toe as her roommate had his way with her. It felt like she was being fucked through one long continuous orgasm, and she wanted it to never end. She was completely dumbfounded at the immense contrast between sex with her boyfriend, and the mouth-watering brutish treatment she was experiencing at that moment. Tae felt good inside of her, but she almost always needed some additional form of external stimulation to complement him. Junho, on the other hand, was a totally different feeling, and he was reaching places deep inside of her that had never been touched before. In addition to his ability to use his massive cock, the way he manhandled her and manipulated her body to suit him was an insanely hot turn on.
Junho admired Ryujinâs luscious figure beneath him. He couldnât believe his luck at how deep she was able to take him in. He was penetrating her with his entire length, and it felt like the exact perfect fit. He was fucking her like a wild man, and she seemed to be loving every second of it. His heavy balls were constricting as they slapped repeatedly into her clit, and he began to feel that he was ready to burst. He slammed into her for the final few strokes he could manage before releasing a deep, satisfying roar and pulling out of her with a loud squelch. His throbbing cock instantly launched a thick, lengthy rope of semen that splattered against the back of her head and ran down the entire length of her spine. Another viscous strand was flung onto her, and several more followed, coating the young girlfriendâs backside in his sticky seed.
Ryujin moaned repeatedly as she felt her roommate climaxing all over her. She reveled in the dirty feeling of his cum forcefully blasting against her skin while her own orgasm still pulsed within her. He let go of her hair and her face slumped into the pillow, the sudden darkness only enhancing her sense of touch. The last two spurts splashed against her pussy directly, which felt titillating and erotic in a dangerous sort of way. She felt his shockingly heavy load pooling at the curved small of her back, and dripping down her ass cheeks. The thoroughly fucked woman remained still for a while with her plump bottom in the air, catching her breath while her head span aimlessly in a dense fog of ecstasy.
SMACK!
Junhoâs wide palm brought her back to reality as he slapped her exposed cheek, sending beads of semen flying. She let out a girlish yelp that normally wouldâve embarrassed her, but in that moment it was who she was. She was Junhoâs fuck doll, and she felt far too satisfied to question it; more satisfied in fact, than possibly ever before. She collapsed into the soft mattress and felt him cover her with the blanket before passing out.
******
When Ryujin woke again, her brain felt clear and calm, but something about the lighting in the room felt off. She reached for her phone and felt a stab of panic as she realized she had slept in well past her usual rising time. Remembering she had the day off made the lateness of the morning less troubling, but there were several missed texts from Tae. She sat up, and the stinging soreness between her legs flooded her with memories of the previous night. She glanced over and was relieved to find that Junho had already left. She quickly swiped at her screen, fearing that her boyfriend had surely heard the debauchery. âFuck, fuck, fuck...â She cursed to herself, regretting how recklessly loud she had been. Her worries began to fade as she read his messages. He made no comments suggesting that he had any idea of what had transpired. He merely asked if she wanted to wake up and join him for some âBack to workâ shopping.
As she peeled the blanket from her sticky body, she silently thanked the universe that Tae had not come to wake her in person. She twisted her torso to discover that she was still absolutely covered in her roommateâs drying cum. If her boyfriend had simply cracked the door open, the smell of the room alone wouldâve been a dead giveaway. The stink of sex hung heavily in the air, a potent reminder of how intense the evening had been. Despite how physically sore and mentally conflicted she felt at that moment, the memories of the encounter and the evidence all over her skin was highly arousing. Her pussy was swollen and red, yet was already beginning to leak her sexual fluids. The feeling of Junhoâs cock inside of her was not an easily dismissable thought, and the way he had taken her was nothing short of mind-blowing. Ryujin resisted the urge to touch herself, and instead jumped out of bed and headed for the shower.
As the scalding water cleared the mess that Junho had left behind, Ryujin pondered her current predicament. Gone was the comfort that full-on, penetrative sex was still reserved for Tae alone, the last remaining pillar of her faithfulness in shambles. If only she had been able to summon the strength to prevent it. Then again, she thought, Did I even really have a say at all? HE fucked ME, and not the other way around. I was just trying to sleep. Ryujinâs mind rationalized the event for nearly an hour in the steamy bathroom, and she emerged ready to face the day.
She made plans to meet Tae at her clothing store to help him pick out some new outfits for work. They ended up spending the entire day out and about, and she did her best to bury any guilty feelings that arose intermittently. That night, Tae did not make a move to have sex, which quelled her fears that he would somehow be able to notice what Junho had done to her.
******
The next evening, Ryujin began to grow nervous as she would be joining her alluring roommate in bed, and didnât know what to expect. They had only seen each other briefly in passing since heâd fucked her, and she had done a lot of processing since then without running it by him. She was going to attempt to reestablish some boundaries, but in the back of her mind, knew it was a nearly impossible challenge. When the time came, she kissed Tae goodnight, and entered Junhoâs room with determination. He was sitting on the bed, fully naked, looking like a chiseled statue of peak masculinity. She felt a tingle in her pussy and his eyes on her while she walked around to her side and sat next to him, leaving her tiny elastic shorts on.
âSo...â She started, not yet knowing which words to select. âWe shouldnât do that again...â
âDo what?â He grinned, brushing some hair out of her face and tucking it behind her ear.
âYou know...â She could feel herself blushing. The physical contact from him in the space where he so recently had his way with her spawned a spark between her legs.
âIâm not sure what youâre referring to,â Junho said playfully. He knew it was a sensitive subject that required careful maneuvering.
âOkay, uhhh. But seriously, that stuff is dangerous. Like... Itâs too good...â She admitted shamefully, dropping her chin.
He smiled at her, and tilted her head up with his finger. âWhatever you say.â He cupped her feminine jaw in his large hand, and rubbed her cheek with his thumb. Her pussy gushed.
Ugh, why is he being all weird? Ryujin wasnât sure what he was up to, but figured he was probably planning something. âWe can still like... mess around and stuff. As long as weâre committed to ending all of this when we start paying rent again.â Her eyes dropped to his bare cock, which was slowly inflating to its full size. I canât believe that fucking thing was inside of me.
Junho pressed his thumb against her lips, and eased it into her mouth. She responded by lightly sucking on it, becoming increasingly turned on by the second.
âMess around, eh?â He asked calmly.
âMhmm,â Ryujin nodded cutely in agreement while swirling her tongue around his finger, squeezing her thighs together in anticipation.
Junho gently removed his thumb from her mouth. âThatâs okay. Youâre right. Best not to push it. We should just go to sleep.â
âBut-â She shot a glance at his massive erection, shocked by his sudden denial.
He lightly tapped her cheek with his palm. âGoodnight Ryujin,â he said, grinning, before turning away from her and switching off the light.
The young woman sat there in the dark, bewildered and horny, trying to make sense of what had just happened. She wasnât going to beg him to touch her, if that was the game he was playing. She did want him to though. Bastard... She accepted the turn of events and lay on her side to go to sleep.
After several minutes, just as she started to drift off, she noticed a rustling behind her. There was movement in her blanket, and suddenly her shorts were ripped all the way down her legs and clean off of her. Before she knew what was happening, she felt Junhoâs large frame shove against hers, and his hands squeeze her chest. âHey!â She thrashed against his hard body, instinctively fighting to get away from his trap. âAre you serious? We just-â Her breath was taken away as he shoved his hard cock straight into her without warning. She was still plenty moist, and her pussy welcomed his intrusion. âAnghhh!â The pleasure center of her brain was abruptly firing on all cylinders as he eased his way to her deepest reaches.
âShhh... Youâre still asleep, remember?â He whispered mischievously.
âNgh... Oh fuck... Ohmmmy God... You fucking ass... Ooooh!â Ryujin moaned as quietly as she could, remembering that not much time had passed since sheâd parted ways with her boyfriend, who was likely still awake in the other room.
âIf you werenât soaking wet for this, maybe Iâd reconsider, but I need to give your body what it wants.â Junhoâs big cock plunged in and out of her sopping wet hole at a calm, but steady pace, while he groped her covered tits. She gasped as he easily tore the flimsy fabric of her top into two pieces, exposing her jiggling breasts, before continuing to roughly caress her. Here she was once more, fully under his control, and powerless to stop the manâs aggressive assault. All she could do was hold on tight, and savor the delight of cumming on his fat dick over and over again. He made her feel so devilishly good, and she was secretly thrilled that he ignored her original protest.
Junho fucked her long and hard that night, albeit slightly more gently than their first session, knowing that her body was still adapting to him. His sexy roommateâs heart-shaped ass served as the perfect cushion to thrust against, and her soft moans into the pillow were music to his ears. Every time she came he would relish in the feel of her hot little body quivering beneath him while her tight pussy squeezed his cock. He finished in the same fashion as before, painting her exposed skin with his copious load before calling it a night. Ryujin was left panting, swimming in pleasure, and drifting off to a deeply satisfying slumber while drenched in his semen.
The following morning, she was the first to wake, and smirked at the realization that her roommate was still spooning her, fast asleep. She could feel his raging hard-on poking her butt, excited by the notion that they were apparently both still horny. She carefully shifted her body out of his embrace, and rotated him to be on his back. Ryujin threw her hair back, and lowered her face to his stiff erection. It smelled of sex, and she touched it with the tip of her tongue to sample the potent flavor of their combined juices. It was intoxicating, in the best way, and she licked it all over. She longed to straddle him and feel that thick cock sink into her needy pussy, but that would be too forward. She couldnât allow herself to be the one to initiate sex with him, as that would erase the miniscule amount of innocence she had left. Instead, she took him into her mouth, and began sucking him lovingly.
Junho stirred, lazily opening his eyes to see his beautiful roommate with her lips around his dick. âHoooohfff... Well good morning, you little slut,â he muttered, placing his hands behind his head. He let himself sink into the comfortable bed as he savored Ryujinâs warm mouth fervently sucking him off.
She popped him out of her mouth, slowly stroking his saliva-coated shaft with one hand. âBe quiet. I just need to take care of this before it gets you into trouble. Who knows what you would try to do to me...â She explained playfully.
âGood point. Unspeakable things, probably,â he flirted back. âMmmm... Yesss. Right there...â He palmed her head and pushed gently in encouragement. She was bobbing her head enthusiastically while stroking the base of his cock with her soft hand. It felt amazing, and Junho relished in the glorious wake-up call that his friendâs girlfriend was giving him willingly.
âJeez, donât you ever run out of stamina?â She asked teasingly, taking a brief moment to catch her breath.
âNever. How else would I claim you for myself?â He chuckled, noting his dried cum on her shoulder.
âYou wish,â she answered.
âWhy donât you cut the bullshit and climb on for a ride, sexy?â
âI canât do that. You know I only have sex with my boyfriend.â
âOhhh riiight.â
The pair exchanged knowing glances before she took him back into her mouth. Ryujin slurped and stroked his big dick diligently until he unloaded his balls down her throat while flexing his muscular thighs from the overwhelming pleasure. She drank all of his spunk down and sucked every last drop from the tip of his head. âFinally. Now we can get on with our day,â she rolled her eyes and smiled slyly, then got out of bed to collect her clothes. Ryujin scoffed at her ripped up shirt, and threw it at her roommate impishly. âNow I have to get to the bathroom topless, you jerk!â
Junho reached for his crumpled up t-shirt on the floor, and tossed it in her direction.
âHmmpf!â She voiced defiantly, slipping the oversized garment onto her bare torso. She quietly opened the bedroom door, and peeked into the apartmentâs living space to confirm that it was empty. Ryujin tiptoed across the room to the bathroom, and grabbed the cool door handle. Against all odds, she was greeted by Taeâs voice, emerging from his bedroom.
âMorning, babe.â He muttered sleepily, causing Ryujin to freeze in her tracks. âWhat are you wearing?â He asked, rubbing his eyes.
âOh... This? I dunno... Oh yeah. Itâs Junhoâs shirt,â she stammered, knowing it was too obvious of a fact to lie about. âI... spilled water on mine last night, and didnât feel like walking all the way to my closet...â She could feel her cheeks turning crimson with guilt, but forced herself to look her boyfriend in the eyes.
âOkay...â Tae replied, clearly suspicious, and not particularly thrilled that his girlfriend was seemingly naked under his friendâs shirt.
Ryujin awkwardly forced a smile, and entered the bathroom hastily. God dammit, Ryujin... The guilt-ridden woman bathed herself, feeling badly that things had gotten so out of hand. Just minutes ago she was lovingly servicing Junhoâs big cock with her mouth, and she had initiated it. When did I become such a fucking slut? Why canât I control myself around that man? She could feel the aftermath of what he had done to her last night, as if he had rearranged her insides. Even now, amidst all of her shame and remorse, a filthy, nagging part of her brain wanted to fuck him again. There wasnât any space to feel guilty while her mind was occupied fantasizing about her dominant roommate storming in there, shoving her up against the wall, and having his way with her.
******
There were two more Junho nights before Taeâs first day at the new job, and on both occasions, Ryujin was dripping wet before she even entered his bedroom. Her resolve to be good quickly fell apart, and she stripped all of her clothes off and placed them in a neat pile. She told herself that she couldnât control what he would do, so she might as well not have her wardrobe ripped to shreds. While it did make sense to preserve her clothing, the more glaring reason was to entice the man to make a move, and provide the easiest access. She slipped under the covers and lay in her sleeping position.
âDonât even think about it.â Facing away from him, she felt like bait, pretending to innocently go to sleep, and knowing that at any minute the big bad predator would be all over her. Her needy pussy leaked generously as she waited with anticipation for him to fill her. She never looked at him during the act, nor directly encouraged him, afraid to cross the line of âquestionable consentâ that they had established. She knew it was a dicey game to play, but worried that her guilt might reach the point of no return if she was fucking her roommate behind her boyfriendâs back as an outwardly willing participant.
After just a handful of rounds with him, Ryujin was becoming addicted to Junhoâs cock. She found herself daydreaming about it constantly: the way it felt when it entered her for the first time each encounter, filling her perfectly; the manly aggression she was subjected to as it pummeled her insides, using her tight welcoming hole to get to the finish line; and the degrading but delicious sensation of being covered in the dominant manâs virile load while she lay there in the most vulnerable position.
When the time finally came and Tae announced that his initial day at work had gone well, Ryujin was relieved, though there was a part of her that didnât want the agreement to end. Her boyfriend was all set to earn his first paycheck in two weeks, at which point there would no longer be any reason to sleep in Junhoâs bed. She thought back to when her roommate had first proposed the arrangement. Mere months ago he shocked her with the wild suggestion, but it felt like ancient history. Her past self wouldnât have been able to fathom what had become of her, but also was completely oblivious to the mind-bending pleasures that were possible.
She and Junho did not openly discuss the impending end date, but they both kept it in mind while carrying on with their routine. Ryujin continued to strip naked and let him have his way with her for each of their final nights together. Though they did the deed more or less in the same fashion each time, it grew no less exciting, and each of their forbidden encounters became the highlight of their day.
On the last night of the agreement, she resisted the urge to break the routine with some symbolic gesture, but Junho had other plans. After losing track of how many times heâd made her cum, she felt the familiar sensation of his cock swelling inside her to signal his orgasm had arrived. She waited in anticipation for him to pull out, but instead he thrust firmly into her again and held still, tightly clutching her hips to trap her against him.
âOh fuck! Wh-What are you- OHHHH!â Ryujin moaned in ecstasy as she felt a warm jet of semen splash against her cervix. Her roommateâs wildly throbbing dick shot rope after rope of thick, sticky seed deep within her unprotected pussy. He groaned hoarsely and thrust in and out of her ever so slightly while draining his big balls into her. The feeling of Junhoâs huge cock spraying its dangerous, heavy load at her deepest depths was quite possibly the hottest thing she had ever experienced. Already blissfully enjoying the way he dominated her, to have him seal the deal and lay claim over her womb took it to the next level. Her fertile young womb, which she had always taken such immense precautions to guard, was now being flooded with what she could only imagine was billions of very capable sperm.
It was as if Ryujinâs biology kicked into overdrive, and she helplessly quivered against her roommate as her brain was saturated in endorphins. Her pussy eagerly milked the ejaculating cock for all its worth, as she came in unison with him. It was exhilarating to think that her body was doing everything it could to soak up as much of his seed as possible, with an utter disregard for any consequences. Junho pumped jet after jet of his thick spunk for what felt like an impossible length of time. There was simply no space left in her stuffed cunt, and she felt the creamy substance overflowing and dribbling down her thighs.
âUnnnghhh... Take all of that cum you fucking slut. Youâre mine now, do you understand?â Junho grunted, staying firmly planted within her as his big cock spurted the last few drops.
âOh my God... Fuuuuck...â Ryujin couldnât think straight, feeling wholly dominated and satisfied in the moment. âYesss... Ngghhh... Iâm your... Slut... Ohhh fuck... So much... Fucking... Cum. Give me it all...â
Junho finally broke the seal, pulling out of her and releasing the extraordinary pressure that had been built up inside of her. His gooey, pearlescent semen flowed out of her gaping pussy like lava. It was a shame for so much of it to go to waste, he thought, but was confident that it was only the first of many loads he would put inside of her. If he had learned anything about his roommate, it was that she was not going to be able to resist him for long, agreement or not. He moved to his spot but watched her delicate form intently. He felt nearly ready at that moment to confess that his feelings for her had blossomed into something more than just sexual desire. It would be better to wait though. He would give her a chance to realize herself that she wouldnât be able to go back to how things were.
Ryujin collapsed onto the soiled sheets and basked in the post-orgasm glow, her upper back rising and falling as she caught her breath. As she drifted back down to reality, she recognized that she should be more concerned with the fact that Junho had finished inside of her, and that the massive pool of cum was still oozing out of her. She convinced herself that it was a problem to worry about tomorrow, and that tonight was for dwelling on pleasure only.
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
what love feels like ŕź myg (m)
â Summary: Being a mother to a beautiful baby girl and wife to an adoring husband is the most rewarding feeling in the world. But you also work a full-time job, are overtired most of the time, stressed, don't have any alone time, look very different than eight years ago, and sex? Well, that hasnât happened in weeks. The gravity of the situation weighs on you until one day, all of your deepest insecurities rear their ugly headâthat your husband might not love you as much anymore and someone could take him away from you.
Pairing: husband!yoongi x reader
AU/genre: angst, fluff, smut, marriage au
Rating: M, 18+
Word Count: 6.7k+
Warnings: swearing, both Yoongi and oc are in their 30s, mom and full-time worker!oc, reserved!dad!yoongi, lack of intimacy, mentions of body insecurities post-pregnancy, mentions of fear of abandonment, mentions of jealousy. irrational worries, built-up stress, light fighting, silent treatment, stubbornness, lots of reassurance, nightmares, cute backstory of how they met, a lot of ily, Yoongi and oc being good parents đĽš, Yoongi calls oc doll, and explicit sexual content
sexual warnings: swearing, kissing, neck kisses, pleading, banter, dirty talk, doll petname, asking for consent, b**b squeezing & sucking, hair threading, penetration, f*ngering, big d*ck!yoongi, growling, missi*nary, eye contact, tearing up, c*ming together
Now Playing: Breathing by Anne Marie
a/n: Okay this was for Yoon's bday. Based on the poll, husband!Yoon won. Was intended to be a Drabble but well...heh đ
Anyway, I had a lot of fun writing this fic and Yoon is just such a good hubby for responding well to these very relatable insecurities. (Low-key love this couple...) I'm sorry for any typos or warnings i missed! I checked and double checked but a few might have slipped. Enjoy! Anyway please enjoy! đĽ°
âSo, you're Jia's father, huh? I donât think I've seen you here before, and Iâm sure I would have recognized you.â
With his back straight and arms folded, Yoongi gives the woman in front of him a quick once-over. Mid-40s, freshly single, and definitely in need of some companionship. It doesnât take a genius to figure out; sheâs been talking his ear off for the past twenty minutes like heâs some kind of remedy to all her problems.
Honestly, he just swung by to pick up his four-year-old from daycare after another grueling day at work. But the moment he walked in, it was as if all the single moms latched onto him like a flock of hungry geese. This oneâs name is Sandra in particular.
It reminds him of his college basketball days, how the cheerleaders all too eagerly swarmed around him after sinking the winning shot at the championship game. Shame he was too busy eyeing the girl in the stands to care, her face buried behind a book twice as big as her head. Who reads an 800-page novel during the playoffs anyway?
Fate, as one may call it, intervened about a week later when his best friend became said girlâs lab partner. Yoongi didnât make any sudden moves at first, but well, he did make her his wife three years later.
âItâs just so nice to finally meet the father of such a sweet child. Especially considering how many dads tend to take a backseat in their child's early years.â Is she still going on? Yoongi does his best to stay present, though itâs proving unsuccessful. âAnd Jia truly is an angel! Itâs clear youâre doing a wonderful job raising her, even with a full-time job and all.â
Yoongiâs eyebrows knit together at the somewhat odd choice of words. âThanks,â he drawls out, noticing her pupils dilating with every breath. âMost of the credit goes to my wife though. Sheâs a great mom to Jia.â
âJiaâs m-mom?â Sandra stutters, her mouth slightly agape. Yoongi senses the gears turning in her head as she struggles to process the unexpected presence of his wife. Tempting as it is, he holds down a smirk. Of course, heâs a happily married manâfor nearly eight years now.
âYeah,â he replies simply. âSheâs usually the one to pick up our daughter from daycare, but sheâs been working a lot of overtime lately. I thought I'd come instead so she can get some rest."
âOh, well thatâs veryââ
âDaddy! Daddy, youâre here!â The sound of a familiar high-pitched voice, along with a light pattering of feet, diverts both adultâs attention.
âHey kid.â Yoongi effortlessly lifts the small child once in front of him, securing her in his arms. âHave fun today?â
Jia gives an enthusiastic nod, bright red ribbons in her hair bouncing cutely as she does. Proudly, she shows him the drawing she made.
âSee? Itâs me, you, and mommy!â She makes sure to point to each part of the picture with her pointer finger.
Yoongi gently takes the artwork from his daughterâs hand and lets out a soft chuckle. âNow this is what I call a masterpiece! Mommyâs gonna love hanging this one on the fridge. How about I hold onto this and you go grab your backpack, okay?â
As soon as Jiaâs feet touch the carpeted floor again, she races off to her cubby in the far corner of the room. Yoongi shoots Sandra a final glance before slowly following behind. âWe got to get going, but nice meeting you.â
âYouâŚtoo.â Sandraâs response is more than disappointed as she watches the father-daughter duo make their way out of the building. Evidently, Min Yoongi isnât the single dad she originally assumed. Funny, she swore there wasnât a wedding band in sight. Maybe she missed it.
âNo, Iâm sorry but Iâm certain we havenât used any of your services in the last six months. My husband canceled it in late October.â
With one hand, you grip your cell phone up to an ear while the other pops open the dishwasher. Youâve been on the phone with the cable company for half an hour, trying to make sense of an unexpected charge that appeared on your bank account this morning. You consider yourself more patient than most, yet after working all day, a pile of laundry waiting to be washed, and dinner threatening to burn on the stove, the last thing you have time for is arguing with your old service provider.
âI understand, maâam, and I apologize for any confusion. Iâm taking a look at my records and theyâre all showing me thatâoh wait a second.â
The young man on the opposite end of the line interrupts his own thought, piquing your concern in the process.
âWhat did you say your last name is?â
You answer and in an instant, youâre met with a thousand rushed apologies; something about getting the account names mixed up in their system. Itâs difficult to decipher everything you hear with the front door being thrust open that very moment.
âMommy, where are you? Weâre home!â Your daughter not so subtly announces her presence from the foyer. She kicks off her shoes, hangs her backpack on the designated wall hook, and then rushes to the kitchen upon catching a brief glimpse of your shirt.
âItâs alright, these mistakes happen.â You hang up the call and turn around to find Jia only steps away, a big goofy grin on her face. Infectious, you break out into a smile yourself and swoop her up.
âHey honey, I missed you so much!â You kiss the side of your daughterâs head as she wraps her small arms around your neck. âYou look so pretty with all these ribbons in your hair! Daddy did a good job, didnât he?â
Being that you were called into work earlier than usual this morning, Yoongi was the one who got Jia dressed and ready for daycare. Youâre delightfully surprised by the results.
âMmhm,â Jia nods, twirling a couple of strands of hair between her thumb and forefinger. âBut Daddy pulls too much!â
âMaybe if someone had listened and stopped fussing when I told her, I wouldnât have accidentally yanked on her hair when I was reaching for her favorite Hello Kitty scrunchie.â Yoongi joins you both in the kitchen, walking over to press a quick peck on your lips while tenderly caressing the small of your back. The gesture soothes you of your earlier frustrations. âWho was that on the phone? Cable company?â
âYeah, they canceled the charge. Wrong account.â As you reiterate the entire mix-up, your eyes wander all over your husband. Heâs especially handsome tonight, given his perfectly tousled black hair and navy blue blazer flowing over his body. Itâs tastefully oversized with a clean, white top paired underneath. You, on the other hand, are sporting a raggedy old t-shirt and stained sweatpants.
There was a time when you used to put a shit ton more effort into your appearance. It was before you got pregnant with Jia, back when you and Yoongi were going out on weekly dates. Neither of you has that kind of time anymore, or energy for that matter. You didnât believe the other moms when they told you the romance takes a nose dive after you have your first kid. Yet here you are, proven wrong again.
Being parents to a beautiful baby girl is likely the most rewarding feeling in the world for you and Yoongi. You donât remember the last time the two of you got real quality alone time though. And sex? Well, that hasnât happened in weeks. The gravity of the situation weighs more on you with each passing day to be honest. Sure, youâre not the same person you used to be eight years ago, but shouldnât you and Yoongi still make time for at least a little intimacy?
âHow was picking up Jia by the way?â You look at Yoongi who merely shrugs nonchalantly in response.
âIt was fine. Nothing too out of the ordinary,â Yoong gives you another peck before heading up the stairs to your bedroom. âIâm gonna go get changed. Why donât you show Mommy the drawing you did Jia?â
âA drawing?â You shift your attention to your daughter whose eyes sparkle like diamonds upon mention. âWe should put it up on the fridge then. Letâs take a look hmm?â
âItâs in my backpack! My new friend and I were drawing together. Her name is Mi-Sun.â Jia continues telling you all about her friend Mi-Sun as you make your way to the front door where her backpack hangs. Youâre fully engaged until the very end. âDaddy made a new friend too!â she joyously claps her hands together, not realizing the depth of her remark.
âOh, whoâs Daddyâs new friend honey?â You ask, staying as calm as possible.
âMs. Cho! They were talking for a really long time today.â
Ms. Cho? You think back to all the moms youâve met at daycare. Somehow you canât recall ever hearing or meeting a Ms. Cho. She must be a single mom, you deduce. Was she new? What did she look like? And why didnât Yoongi mention her when you asked?
This has to be nothing but a little small talk, an acquaintance at most. Besides, the moms at Jiaâs daycare are quite a chatty bunch and Yoongi wouldnât dare overstep any boundaries.
âDo you know what they were talking about?â You donât enjoy asking your child for details about your husband, yet you canât seem to help it this time.
âI dunno,â she shrugs her shoulders. "Daddy was laughing a lot."
Suddenly, the self-assurance you gave yourself earlier slips away; seemingly useless given the queasy feeling building in the pit of your stomach.
For the remainder of the night, you purposely dodge every attempt your husband makes to kiss, touch, and hold you. Youâve even begun responding to his questions in one-word answers and at times, with nothing at all.
Yes, youâre being petty; more than usual. The silent treatment frustrates Yoongi to no end and it isnât very mature of you, but neither is refusing to tell your wife that some single mom was flirting with you in front of your kid! Okay, so maybe that's an exaggeration. Maybe it all sums up to a harmless conversation, but itâs not like you know either way with Yoongi being as reserved as he is. It brings you back to your early dating days when he wouldnât think to tell you about various aspects of his day; who he ate breakfast with that morning or the one classmate of his that wouldnât leave him alone for two semesters.
Truth be told, you're simply hoping that your husband will bring up the topic first, without having to be the classic nagging wife. Youâre a jealous person by nature so itâs not a simple task. Even now as you fold the first batch of laundry on your shared bed, him on the other side doing the same, you struggle to keep from blurting everything out.
âSo,â Yoongi fluffs up a clean pillowcase before sliding it onto one of the bed pillows. âHow was work?â
What a basic question, you grumble internally. Is that all heâs got? âWas okay,â you reply. âThe usual.â
âYou must be tired from the day. Did you get to lie down at all?â Yoongi picks up another pillowcase, repeating the process as before. When he glances your way, itâs clear somethingâs on your mind. Youâve started pairing Jiaâs socks far more aggressively than normal and youâre holding back your responses. âDid you hear me, doll? Or am I going deaf here?â The sarcastic chuckle distracts you from your task, forcing your attention.
Youâre about to respond when your eyes briefly flicker down to his hands, his left one in particular. Where's his wedding ring? Yoongi always wears it no matter what. The same sick feeling from before returns tenfold. No wonder that Ms. Cho was all over himâshe must have thought he was single.
âNo, I didnât get to lie down Yoongi. I worked all day, came home and made dinner, called the cable guy to get that stupid bill figured out, and now Iâm doing the second load of laundry. Iâm really just not in the mood to chat.â It comes out a blur as you snatch the empty laundry basket and head for your washer and dryer, your eyes welling up with tears.
â__, wait.â Yoongi tosses the last pillow near the headboard and stops you in your tracks, his hand firmly gripping one end of the laundry basket. The intensity of his stare softens as he speaks. âI'm sorry if it seems like I'm forcing you to talk. I know you've been losing a lot of sleep recently between work, Jia, and upkeeping the house. We just don't get a lot of time to see each other anymore and I miss youâŚI miss talking to you."
With every ounce of self-control remaining, you hold back any tears that risk spilling out. You don't know why you're acting like this, why you're crying over something that seems so small and insignificant to the rest of the world. Yoongi loves you. He's said it a million times and proven it to you over and over again, for eight years now. He wouldnât cheat on you, yet you still get so worked up about the idea that someone could take him away from you. Someone half your age, more attractive, or hell even the opposite sex if it means fewer dark circles under their eyes.
"Why- why aren't you wearing your ring?" Your naturally confident voice dwindles to the whisper of a mouse. It's completely out of character, nevertheless, here you are.
"I..." Your husband's voice wavers. His gaze flickers to his left hand, where his ring should be, but isn't. "Shit...I took it off in the shower this morning," he confesses, frustrated by his forgetfulness. "I was in such a rush to get Jia to daycare, and me to work, that it completely slipped my mind. I'm sorryâI fully intended to put it back on." He pauses, then perks up. "It's still in the bathroom. I'll be right back, okay?"
You watch as he makes a beeline for the master bathroom, eager to rectify the situation as soon as possible. You should have kept silent what you say next, but you don't.
"No wonder the moms at Jia's daycare were so drawn to you."
"What?" Yoongi stops in his tracks. The dumbfounded expression on his face tells you that you've caught him off guard again.
"Jia told me about someone named Ms. Cho," you reluctantly continue. "The two of you were laughing and talking andâ"
"Baby, don't worry about that." Seizing his chance, your husband walks back over to you and sneakily pulls the laundry basket from under your arm. He sets it on the ground after, then reaches to take your hand in his, but stubbornly you cross your arms.
"Her name's Sandra," he starts explaining. "She's a new mom at the daycare and she didn't know anyone, so she started talking to me. I got the sense she was a little overly friendly but it was all small talk, nothing more."
Still largely unsatisfied, you remain unmoved. "If it wasn't a big deal then why didn't you tell me earlier?"
"Because nothing serious happened. The majority of the conversation was her venting about her ex-husband and me wishing you were right there next to me. Please believe me. All I could think about was finally being able to come home to you after a long week with Jia in our arms."
"Really?" Well, now you're feeling guilty for avoiding him in nearly every way tonight. Guilty for believing such wild assumptions that he'd leave you for someone else over one measly conversation. Guilty for letting yourself get so worked up over a situation you, quite frankly, knew few details about.
"I mean it doll." This time, when he reaches out to grasp your wrist, he succeeds. He intertwines his fingers with yours and leads you to the edge of your bed, gently pulling you down to sit on his lap. "Do you really think I could look at anyone else the way I look at you? Or think about you the way I have for the last eight-plus years we've been married and known each other?"
You hesitate your answer, averting his eye contact. "I know butâŚ"
"No, don't finish that. Look at me," he intercepts. "You and our daughter are the only women on my mindâ24/7. I can't get either of you out of my head and I don't want to. I'm so sorry I forgot to put my wedding band back on this morning, and again tonight. I feel awful about it and I'll be more careful from now on. And another thing, when Sandra and I were talking I mentioned you multiple times. So, it's clear to her that I'm a happily married man."
The last bit of information manages to perk your ears. "You talked about me?" Your eyes widen as you finally shift your full attention to him. Yoongi eyes widen with you, amused by your sudden change of heart to look at him.
"I said my wife is an amazing mother, works too hard for her own good, and needed to rest today. Give or take a few words."
That's all? You huff to yourself. Would it been nice if your husband also thrown in that you were beautiful or stunning in that mix of compliments? Yes, yes it would haveâagain, you're pettiness clouds your better judgment. You're not as pissed off as before, but rather semi-irritated.
"OkayâŚwell I guess it's fine then. I'm sorry for being short with you earlier. I shouldn't have made those rash conclusions about the ring and that woman from the daycare. It wasn't reasonable of me." You get up from his lap, yet Yoongi isn't entirely convinced that you're okay.
"There's still something you're not telling me. I can tell."
"No, there's nothing else." You waive him off, placing your hand on your bedroom doorknob "You told her you had a wife so it's fine. I need to switch the second load of laundry.â
"Come on, doll. Let's not leave things unsaid now."
Sighing at his plead, you find yourself giving into all your repressed thoughts and emotions. It swallows you up, like a tidal wave you can't stop. "Look at me Yoon. I'm sweaty, I have dark circles under my eyes, stretch marks, love handles, my hair's a mess, and all I wear are old sweats covered in stains. I'm nothing like I used to be! No wonder we aren't intimate anymore."
Yoongi rises from the bed at once, offended by the sudden digression. "Is that what this is all about? Itâs not even about that single mom from daycare is it?" The truth of the matter sinks in as he speaks.
"I guess maybe soâŚthough I'm still annoyed about that too." Great, you're back to square one again.
"Come with me, I need to show you something." Your husband gestures you to follow him, which you slowly concede to.
"What are you doing Yoon?" You both walk into the master bathroom, stopping in front of the large mirror above the sink.
"I'm showing you the woman I'm in love with and have been in love with for nearly eight years now. Sweats and all." Yoongi makes you face the mirror directly, hands around your shoulders. You have trouble stomaching the sight.
"Yoongi please, I can't. The laundry ringing off." You avoid looking into the mirror and make a move to leave the bathroom.
"Just stay with me a minute, please?" Your husband refuses to loosen his hold on you, turning your body so you're looking eye to eye. "No, you're not the same person as you were and neither am I. We're parents to a beautiful daughter now, who we love and adore. We're also overtired 90% of the time, juggling a million things at once. But there's one thing you can count on to always stay the sameâmy loyalty to you. I'll always be in love with you __, no matter what age you are or however way you look. There's nothing you can do to change that, so why fight it?"
Dammit. A single tear rolls down your cheek as you take in his heart-melting speech. It's not his words alone, it's the sincerity behind them. How he's repeated similar countless times before throughout your entire relationship.
"I love you, Yoon..." you choke out the words, composure fleeting.
"I love you so much, doll." He wipes the wetness of your tear with his thumb. "As far as us not being as intimate anymore, that's my fault. I don't ever want you to feel like I don't desire you every day. Why don't we send the kid to my parents this weekend and let me start making things right hmm?"
"I don't know if we can this weekend. Jia has a playdate on Saturday."
"So, I'll ask Mom to take her. She'll be happy to, trust me. We can finally watch that movie you've been dying to show me since what? December?"
"You're serious?" Your eyes light up at the mention of what is essentially a movie date. The show Yoongi's referring to is one you've been craving to see for months, yet neither of you has found the time to watch. "I've been talking about it for so long, Yoon."
"I know you have, it's why I suggested it. I've been wanting to watch it too with all the trailers you keep sending me. Plus, I'll be able to keep my beautiful wife in my arms for over two hours. That's a lot for us, especially with you being such a busy bee. I can never get you to light in one place! What's up with that, huh?"
Feeling your natural self re-emerging, you throw a playful swat to his arm and scowl at his teasing comment. "You're one to talk! You're basically a workaholic! Besides, you knew who you were marrying when you met me."
Yoongi chuckles and brings both hands to cup your cheeks, squishing them slightly. "A cutie who reads 800-page novels at a basketball game?"
"Stop babying me!" You pull his hands off your cheeks and rub them, trying to regain some composure. "I don't regret my choices, I like books. It's why I'm such a boss at work!"
"Okay, boss," he laughs. "What about what I suggested before then? I can call Mom tomorrow and ask her if she could watch Jia for the day. She'll take her to her playdate, then they can spend the rest of the day together."
It does sound nice, having the whole day with your husband.
"Okay," you agree. "Let's try."
"Good." Yoongi slides his hands down to your hips and pulls you flush against his chest. "How about we seal it with a kiss now?" You nod and he leans his head down, pressing an amazing, tender kiss to your lips. It makes you both giddy on queue.
"Read one more story, Daddy!" Jia leaps off her small, twin bed and bounds for her bookshelf. She lets out a series of giggles when a large pair of hands catch her, lifting her high into the air.
"I already read you three books kid," Yoongi says, planting a kiss on her cheek. "Bedtime." He then tucks her into her fluffy comforter, plugs in her teddy bear nightlight, and closes her bedroom door.
The next second, Jia comes running out of her room, latching onto his right leg. "I don't wanna go to bed. I wanna play!" Figures she'd be hyper at this hour.
Yoongi sighs and picks her up. "Daddy told you to go to sleep, it's not playtime. You'll have lots of time for that tomorrow when you get to see your friend." He then carries her into her room, yet she fusses in his arms; thumping her tiny fists into his chest.
"No, no, no, Daddy. I want to play!"
Sighing, Yoongi looks at his child with sharp eyes. "Jiaâ"
"Hey," you interrupt, entering your daughter's bedroom upon hearing the commotion down the hall. "What's going on?"
"Kid doesn't want to go to bed."
You give an empathetic look and saunter over to the pair, gently taking Jia into your arms. Yoongi places his hands on his hips as he watches you reason with your daughter.
"Jia, you know tomorrow's a big day right? You and Sana are going to go to the playground together." The child nods. "You don't want to be tired when you're playing do you?"
"No..." She shakes her head. "I want to be awake!"
"Then you need to listen to Daddy and go to sleep. That way you'll be full of energy tomorrow when you and Sana go on the swings or slide down all the big slides." You smile as Jia starts rubbing her drowsy eyes, yawning in the process.
"But I...okay," she slowly concedes, eyes fluttering shut as she gives into her sleepy state. Unsurprising to you and Yoongi, she was tired all along. But like most kids, hated going to bed.
"See?" You lay Jia in her bed and pull the covers up near her chin, giving her a light kiss on the side of her head. Yoongi bends down and does the same after you. "You just gotta talk to her a little, she'll typically fall asleep on her own."
"But I read her three of her favorite books." Yoongi shuts off the overhead light, along with the door to Jia's room, and follows you to your bedroom.
"That's different Yoon," you argue back. "Books excite her."
"She takes after you that way then." Yoongi pulls his t-shirt off, leaving him bare-chested, and climbs onto his side of the bed. You join him shortly after with your head resting on his chest and an arm thrown around his waist.
"I'm so exhausted," you yawn.
"Go to sleep, baby. I'm right here." Your husband places a hand over your wrapped arm, sending you off into a deep slumber.
Well this is just ironic. Almost 2 A.M. and you're wide awake.
What initially started as a nice, relaxing dream quickly turned into a terrible nightmare. In the dream, you woke up alone. Yoongi was gone. Jia was gone too. You can't exactly make sense of it, except for a vague memory of Jia calling another woman 'Mom'. You couldn't see her face very well, so it could've been anyone. You couldn't speak either, so even when you tried approaching the three, they couldn't hear you. You've had nightmares plenty of times, but this one is new. It's a clear projection of all the underlying concerns upheaved from earlier; insecurities, abandonment, loss, and it has you unsettled.
You glance over to your husband's side of the bed. He's fast asleep, no longer cuddling you due to you both flip-flopping in your sleep. You decide to slide closer to him, needing to watch him for a while. It might sound weird, but you love watching him sleep. He's so handsome and you feel a great deal of comfort doing so. Maybe if he was awake, you'd tell him about what you dreamt. Then again...maybe not.
"I love you Yoon," you whisper as quietly as you can, tracing his every facial feature with your eyes.
"'m, I love you too."
Is he-was he awake? As if caught red-handed, you quickly flit your face away in favor of the blank ceiling above. You weren't expecting him to answer at all, and in such a hoarse voice too. You're a little turned on by it to be honest.
"Can't sleep?" he speaks up again, eyes still closed.
"No, I''ll be okay though. You can go back to sleep. Don't worry."
He grunts, a tad unhappy with your dismissal of him. "Do you want to talk about it? Your dream?"
You whip your head in his direction. "Howâ" You pause, seeing his eyes blink open.
"I didn't meet you just yesterday, doll. I know they keep you up. Just know, I'm always here okay? Always." He reaches for you with delicate fingers as he continues. "Now, come here. Seems we got separated in our sleep."
You accept the offer and cuddle into him again. This time your noses nearly touch and his arm wraps around your lower waist. You feel the growing urge to kiss him, wanting to forget your nightmare entirely. But perhaps silly, you ask permission first, seeing as he's close to drifting off again.
"Yoon?"
"Mm."
"Can we kiss?" Your cheeks flush a little at the request. Why are you acting like this? You've been married for years.
"Sure, 'm tired but I could go for a make-out right now." A small smirk graces his lips as he teases you. You give him a classic 'Yoongi!' in reply. "I'm kidding. You don't ever have to ask me that," he finishes.
"Hmm, maybe I don't want a kiss anymore." You feign stubbornness, just to see his response. And a response he gives you, more than you're prepared for.
"You're ridiculous," he grumbles, capturing your lips in one fell swoop. He moves his lips against yours as the hand on your waist grips tighter. The tiniest of moans escapes your lips.
You attempt to break the kiss first, thinking it will only last for a few seconds. Yet Yoongi slips a hand behind your neck to bring you into another kiss. One that's deeper than the last. You feel your breath being taken away little by little, especially when his tongue licks into your mouth. God, you haven't kissed like this in an eternity. A wetness soon gathers between your thighs.
"'m, Yoon," you gasp when his cool fingers sneakily make their way under your shirt, tickling your bare skin. They travel the expanse of your waist, stomach, and up along your back. "So cold."
Yoongi pulls away from the kiss and retracts his fingers. He then lazily moves his body until his chest hovers over your own, rolling you on your back in the process. He's a bit of a blur due to the dimness of the room, yet you can see the whites of his eyes a bit better than before.
"Help me warm them then," he says, folding his hands on top of yours from where they rest on your stomach. "You're really burning up, doll."
His observation is right. Ever since you woke up, you're body's been hotter than normal. The stress is clear and it's only increasing due to the unexpected turn of tonight's events; your husband seemingly wanting to make love to you in the middle of the night.
"So I am," you reply, staring straight into his eyes. "Must be because of all the sudden surprises today. My body's finally responding to it all."
Yoongi nods, following your implication. "Well let's do something to calm it down, shall we?" He waits for your final go before making any abrupt movements.
"But...you haven't seen meâ"
"Naked in a while?" he predicts your next words, unfazed. "I've seen it all, each time better than the last because I love you. You're beautiful to me, no matter what. Let me love you __. I've missed you. I've missed us."
"Okay...please," you sigh, desperately needing his touch. "It's been so long since we've been this close."
Neither of you has it in you to delay another second as you dive into another fiery kiss, your hands wandering up and down each other's bodies. You love his hair the most, so you run your fingers through it repeatedly. Your husband's soft grunts remind you that it's as pleasurable for him as it is for you, and as if to counter, he latches his lips to the curve of your neck.
"Yoon," you moan, shivering at the feeling of being peppered in open-mouth kisses. Your eyes automatically roll up as well.
Yoongi nips at your jaw next, featherlike, yet deadly to you nevertheless. He doesn't allow himself to linger more than a second, though, preferring to keep you on your toes. So with careful fingers, he begins lifting the bottom of your shirt.
"Can I?"
You hum in approval and lean forward for him to remove it.
With your nipples now exposed to the brisk air, stiffening due to arousal, Yoongi brings both his hands up to caress your boobs. He's incredibly gentle, telling you how beautiful you are once again until his thumbs start circling your peaked nipples. A rush of sensation shoots up your spine as he rolls them harder, flicking them once in a while.
"Fuck," you swear.
"Feeling good?"
All you do is nod fervently in response, which Yoongi takes as his signal to lower his head to your chest. He squeezes both breasts in his hand before wrapping his mouth around a nipple, licking and sucking relentlessly. He repeats the same to the other.
"Yoongi, I need you. Please." You're core tightens, thighs struggling not to rub together, as you plead with your husband to relieve you. You are so wet and getting wetter.
"I'm here, doll, I got you. Fingers first hm?"
He pushes part of the comforter towards the foot of the bed, then gestures for you to raise your butt. Any shred of mystery of how worked up he's gotten you slip away as he pulls your underwear and pants down your legs. They both get tossed on the floor, per usual.
Bare pussy exposed, Yoongi guides your legs further apart and brings a hand down to your entrance. One of his long, slender fingers traces up your folds so smoothly that you buck your hips upon the touch. He smiles lightly at the subtle response, pleased that you're finally enjoying yourself; too often you put your needs last. His finger slowly sinks into your well-lubricated pussy, velvety walls clenching around it.
"Oh, g-god," you give a shaky moan as his finger pumps and curls in you, stimulating your g-spot. "Need you now, Yoon, so bad."
"Mm not yet, we need to stretch you out. You haven't taken me for a good three or four weeks," he smirks at your eagerness, sliding a second finger next to the first. "This pussy is drenched but not enough. I need you to come. Can you do that for me?"
Fast, quick movements follow suit as your husband works you up to an orgasm. Oh fuck, oh fuck, you chant in near whines. Your pussy is spasming around him, walls tightening with each push and pull. You know when he draws his hand out that it's covered with your come. Messy, sex is messy and both of you are too far gone to care; the pleasure sweeping over you.
Finally, in what feels like an endless tease, you have your first orgasm of the night. You feel your body relaxing into the mattress again, yet your breath remains short. Yoongi, on the other hand, groans seeing your release dripping down your thighs and onto the sheets. For a split second, there's a slight darkening in his eyes while he takes in your post-orgasmic form. The two fingers that had been inside you are sensually brought to his lips, slipping between the seam before being cleaned off.
You're taken aback by the action, though you've witnessed it before. Something about watching your husband willingly follow through with a gesture so lewd makes your head spinâyou want him to fuck you right this instant. He must share the same feeling because you don't even need to sound the words due to his hands already making quick work of his pants.
"You drive me mad, you know that? Can never get a break with how sweet you taste. Your lips, your come. All of it makes me go mad." His full length comes in view, hard and tip leaking with pre-cum. You try not to let yourself stare at the thickness but hell, you must've forgotten the extent of your husband's size. You don't remember it being this big before.
"Well," you gulp. "You're not making it easy on me either, looking like this."
Yoongi climbs over to you again, settling into a straddled position, and looks deep into your eyes. "Who's fault do you think that is?"
"It's your fault." You bend your legs and wrap them around his mid-section. You can feel the tip of his cock tease at your entrance. The anticipation is beyond grueling.
"No," he says, aligning himself up to your weeping hole. "it's yours." He then thrusts his hips forward, his length sinking into you so perfectly it has you completely satisfied.
"Y-Yours," you whimper out, unable to form a steady sentence.
"Fine." He picks up his pace. "Let's just agree we both fuck each other up on a daily---ah fuck!" Yoongi growls and gives you a suspicious look when he feels your pussy suddenly clench around his length.
"I didn't do it on purpose this time! You're fucking me too good is all."
"Really? You're not just teasing me?"
Yoongi is slow to believe since you've purposefully clenched countless times before, simply out of playfulness. Tonight is different than those nights though because you're telling the truthâhe's truly fucking you so good.
"What the hell," he concedes. "You feel so fucking fantastic, I don't even care." He continues his movements, thrusting into you with deep groans and labored breaths. His fingers grip the mattress harder with the veins in his neck bulging out.
Both your bodies move in sync as the familiar sound of skin slapping on skin echoes off the walls of your bedroom. You do your best to keep your moans low, not wanting to risk waking up your daughter.
"Yoon, fuck! I need to come, it's gonna-fuck-happen soon," you swear, pussy throbbing at the feeling of being so full after weeks of abstinence. You can tell you're reaching your high with the bundle of nerves in your core threatening to snap at any given moment.
Of course, you're wet too, extremely wet.
"I'm. Nearly. There." He barely sounds the words out, jaw clenching. "Just another minute, and we can finish together."
Your eyes, which haven't left his since he entered you, begin to glass over with tears. It's overwhelming; his love for you. No matter the doubts that tell you the opposite, you can't give in to their ugly lies. You'll continue to struggle, naturally, but you won't ever let them win. Yoongi's never once given up on you, and neither should you.
"I love you, Yoon...I love you with all my soul," you choke the words, falling apart all at once. "I'm sorry for today. How jealous and irrational I got."
"Don't apologize, doll. I shouldn't have let it go so far, our lack of intimacy and alone time. I promise we're going to make it all right okay?"
Giving you one last thrust, you both have your release at the same time. Yoongi helps ride your orgasm out by lazily continuing to grind into you. Yeah, you might need to shower and switch out the sheets after tonight, but you don't regret it one bit.
"In all seriousness baby," Yoongi speaks up, guiding your legs back on the soft mattress until youâre comfortable. "Don't feel like you have to apologize for everything. I understand your feelings and where you were coming from. I will say, the silent treatment kills me though. I'd rather you yell at me than not talk to me at all."
"It's not easy for me to raise my voice like that, Yoon." You throw your arms around his neck and sigh softly. "But I can try talking to you more, or at least tell you I need some time to process before I'm ready to have a conversation. I don't know, am I making sense?"
"Plenty of sense. I'll share more about my day with you and who I'm talking to as well. We'll also carve out time to have together. I love our daughter, but I don't see the harm in reaching out to our friends and family to babysit once in a while."
"Well, this sounds good to me," you hum.
"Me too." Yoongi smiles wide and goes in for another warm kiss. Your eyes flutter shut in unison.
This is what love feels like.
a/n: LMK what you think đĽ°
Masterlist | Requests: closed | Taglist | Fic Recs
no reposting, copying, or translating my workâ Š kookslastbutton
#yoongi smut#yoongi fluff#yoongi angst#yoongi x reader#yoongi fanfic#bts imagine#bts smut#bts fluff#bts x reader#bts fanfic#bts scenarios#bts au#fic:whatlovefeelslike#kookslastbutton
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Simon "Ghost" Riley x Fem!reader
Summary: Lt. Riley sure has been taking a lot of smoke breaks lately. Strange that you always seem to disappear at the same time too.
Author's Note: Just a quick little one shot I came up with to get me back into the swing of things and give you all a little snack for what's to come.
âAgain?â Soap questions as he watches the lieutenant stand up from the back of the table, cigarette pack in hand. âYe have a real problem mate. Swear yer married te those things these days, always havinâ te go out fer another smoke. Ye should get some help fer yer addiction, L.T.â
Lt. Riley doesnât stop to reply, moving his chair back in without missing a beat. âMaybe Iâm just tryinâ ta have an excuse to fuckinâ leave so ya canât persuade me into stayinâ for more of your inane drivel,â he returns dryly. â âSides, itâs gettinâ late.â
Soap rolls his eyes skeptically at the statement. âWhatever ye say,â he chuckles, brushing off the comment like nothing and letting the lieutenant walk off without consequence, something rare for the mouthy sergeant, but Lt. Riley is too preoccupied to pay it much attention.
From your place at the table, you carefully sneak glances to watch as the hulking form of your superior locks eyes with you for only a second before he makes his way over to the door of the mess hall and opens it to step out into the night air. You force yourself not to linger too long in his direction, redirecting your attention back to your fellow operatives that still sit around you chatting even though dinner had ended some time ago.
It doesnât take long for the conversation to pick right back up where it left off, though you stay silent as you slowly try to fade yourself out of the group without anyone noticing your absence. The heated topic of the best explosive types has everyone engaged and you see your opportunity to leave and slip out undetected.
Too bad you don't notice a couple eyes dart your way before they turn back to one another to share a knowing look and a smirk. Yet nothing is said out loud and you make it out with incident.
Stepping out into the cool night, you find it odd that there are no signs of life near the door, no 6â4â military officer propped against the brick smoking. The unexpected absence makes your heart leap, but as you let your eyes adjust to the dark you catch movement off to your side. At the edge of the building you can just make out the dissipating wispy trail of vapor as it floats up towards the sky. Bingo, thatâs what you are looking for. Turning your feet in the direction of the smoke, you make your way over, the soles of your shoes crunching over the gravel scattered along the ground and echoing off the walls of the building. You donât have far to go and as soon as your body rounds the corner, your wrist is grabbed up by long fingers into the palm of a large, rough hand.
You know this grip intimately.
âLookinâ for somethinâ, pretty girl?â the familiar gruff voice hits your ears as your body is pushed back first into the rough surface of the wall.
Tilting your head up, you look directly into that skull-masked face and instantaneously a smile spreads across your lips. âWas looking for someone, actually,â you answer confidently, a bit of playfulness to your tone.
Hooking your thumbs through the front belt loops on his jeans, you pull him in closer so that he is pinned against you. âAnd wouldnât you know, I just found him,â you say.
Fuck, did you have to play on his one weakness so early?
âWas wonderinâ when youâd fuckinâ break away,â he chuckles to disguise that fact that your little maneuver has caused his pulse to race violently through his veins.
Those large, greedy hands find their place on the curve of your hips and he wonders if you can feel his thudding heartbeat through his touch as he stands there in the silence with you. Heâs waiting patiently for what comes next, the simple ritual you've developed that you put into practice whenever youâre alone together. Right now he is still under the guise of Ghost and only you can bring out the man behind the mask.
Searching his chest to find the neckline of his shirt, you dig your fingers inside and find the edge of the fabric keeping his face hidden from you. You tug at the balaclava to free it before you pull it up and off his features, bunching it together and pushing it to the top of his head so that he wears it like a beanie. And suddenly there he is: not Ghost, not Lt. Riley, but Simon, your Simon in the flesh once again.
âDidnât want to make it too obvious,â you return as you take him all in, fingertips following the line of his cheek, âthe others arenât that oblivious; theyâll put two and two together if given enough clues. We could get caught, you know. How long till they figure out that I always seem to go missing whenever you go for a smoke?â
There is a coolness on your hip now as one of his hands finds its way around the back of your neck to hold you in place as his thumb smoothly caresses over the delicate skin of your cheek in long, slow strokes. âDonât care anymore,â he mutters as his gaze lingers at your eyes before they drift down to your full lips. There is a yearning in his chest watching them part as he drags that same thumb heavily across the length and it blooms as he hears the quiet sigh you release at feeling his touch over that sensitive bit of skin.
âItâs gettinâ harder and harder ta keep my hands to myself whenever youâre âround.â
He leans in as he holds you steady by the back of the head, his face getting closer and closer until his balmy breath wafts over your bottom lip. Itâs intoxicating the way the presence of your mouth lingering just out of reach makes the skin on his tingle with anticipation and he suspends you both in the tantalizing feeling of the moment for a few seconds without speaking, just letting the sensations play out.
The agonizing depth of his need pools in the pit of his stomach, making him clench his hand around your spine as it overwhelms his body. âDonât wanna have ta keep holdinâ back.â
Being pressed against you, you can easily feel him take in a shuddered breath. âGet such a fuckinâ cravinâ for your lips sometimes it feels like Iâm goinâ insane,â he whispers the words into your face, his nose gliding against the tip of your own as his mouth ghosts over yours until you tremble in his grasp as his temptation overwhelms you.
Your heartbeat pounds hard against your ribcage and you can hear it in your head. His intensity is enough to make you dizzy, your vision hazy at best as you are consumed with him and only him. No one has ever had this much control over you, but with Simon it is effortless the way he owns all the free space in your mind so that it takes the most minimal effort to have you falling apart, melting in his hands.
In the shadow of the mess hall, hidden in the dark with just you and him, the world seems to completely fall away. Whatever waits outside that moment for you both is forgotten, pushed aside to make room for the need you share for each other.
âSimon,â you moan his name, your eyes fluttering closed as your desperation overtakes you and leaves you begging for him to break the distance still between you.
God, the way his name falls so sweetly from your lips makes him just as feral now as it did the first time he heard you use it. He is insatiable in the way he is willing to do anything just to hear you say it again.
The air outside tonight is cool, but the atmosphere between your bodies is heated from the sticky, warm breath that you both share between your mouths, the proximity of your bodies, the rise in blood pressure that makes your skin hot to the touch. Itâs getting harder to breathe and yet the thought of you pulling away from him before he can get his fill of you is torture.
âSwear Iâve never missed someone tha way I miss ya when I have ta stay away,â he says, followed quickly by a groan into your face as you place your palm on his sternum to feel the weighty rise and fall of his broad chest.
Your touch is exhilarating and suddenly his whole body is aroused as if struck by lightning. Unintentionally, his hips move on instinct and begin to grind into yours, the growing bulge in the crotch of his pants making him desperate for more friction and you immediately meet his need with your own. That last shred of his sanity is waning fast the more you both rub yourselves against each other until out of the haze filling his mind and distracting him from his goal he finally finds the last bit of clarity to speak before he completely falls apart.
âChrist, I will never get enough of ya, sweetheart.â And with a brief pause, Simon inhales and leans in hungrily to capture your lips with his.
His mouth dominates your own with urgency, as if at any moment you will be snatched from his hands and he will be left starving for the sensation of your mouth tangling with his.
Your back is slammed into the uneven texture of the brick, jagged bits of clay grating the skin of your back through your t-shirt from the force of your lieutenant aggressively capturing your mouth over and again. Sweet spit and heated lips mingling as he insatiably devours your kiss to leave a wreck of flesh behind on the lower half of your face that only burns for more of his embraces.
Shrouded in the dark your bodies melt together with yours being swallowed by the bulk of his, those bulging muscles along his abdomen pressing into you, pinning you to the wall until you can hardly catch your breath. You hold onto him to keep him from drifting, two tight fists balled up with his shirt as your need overwhelms every sense in an intensity that is shared like an electrical current through your bodies.
Large, coarse hands cup around your face, tilting your head upward to him as his tongue juts out from between his teeth and over his lips to prod against yours until you open your mouth and allow him to shove it in. That thick muscle fills the cavity full as he explores, feeling you, tasting you, memorizing the inside of your mouth. The nicotine on his breath is still pungent from the cigarette that is glowing discarded on the ground at your feet, its sharp notes dancing over the surface of your taste buds as you suck on his tongue.
His knee finds its way between your legs, pressing up into the wall behind you so that the bulk of his thigh is pushed against the mound of your sex, giving you access to something you can ride as your desire intensifies. The stimulation is like a catalyst and without hesitation you begin to roll your hips into it.
Simon is pawing desperately at your clothing to get beneath it and make contact with as much soft, warm skin as his hands can enjoy when a sudden loud clang somewhere close by breaks you both out of the spell of your lust. Two heads return side to side in search for the source of the noise, only to find that nothing is out of place. But the moment is broken and you are both now fully aware of how exposed you are just out in the open.
âMeet at mine after lights out, yeah?â Simon says through heavy panting, holding your face cupped between his hands as he struggles to gain back his composure, at least enough to cross base without drawing attention to himself and the bulge straining against the front of his jeans.
You nod, scrambling to regulate your own quick breathing.
He quickly pulls your face back in for one more feverish kiss before releasing you, pulling down his mask, and briskly heading off into the night. It's still about an hour you have left to wait and though you know that it isn't that long in the grand scheme of things, as you clench your thighs together, you know it won't come soon enough.
#simon ghost riley#simon riley#call of duty#ghost cod#ghost mw2#ghost x reader#simon riley x reader#cod mw2#simon riley smut#simon ghost riley smut#simon smut#simon#ghost simon riley#simon riley x you#simon ghost x reader#simon ghost riley x reader#simon ghost x you#simon ghost smut#ghost#ghost cod smut#cod ghost
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Hits Different (...'cause it's you) (1)
 I trace the evidence, make it make some sense Why the wound is still bleedin' 
PAIRING: kim mingyu x reader
SYNOPSIS: Kim Mingyu was the first friend your brother had brought home for dinner. Fast forward a couple years, his toothy smile and pierced ears would wedge their way into a permanent place in your heart. Nail to a coffin, never to escape.
or;
in which you get rejected by the only boy you've ever loved; a rejection you can't quite shake off.
GENRES: based off of 'Hits Different' by Taylor Swift, brother's best friend!au, brother!seokmin, fluff, angst, smut (in part 2) [MINORS DNI], friends(?) to lovers, university!au.
PLAYLIST: right here!
WORD COUNT (full fic): 40k (im actually embarrassed)
Part 1: 20.2k | Part 2: 20k
masterlist
WARNINGS : slowburn, angst, fluff, mingyus a bit of an airhead and an ass, reader has a hard time managing her feelings, lots of frustrated tears, one sided pining, user toruro x minghao make an appearance, swearing, there's another woman (gasp,,,,,but shes cool so), Nayeon is a darling, Seungcheol is kinda annoying here but we love him, smut tags in part 2
(Comments from @toruro): "oh shizzle", "yeah bitch", (on jihyo) "mother", "ME X HAO FIRE EMOJI", "men (derogatory)"
[A/N]: Tumblr is annoying and won't let me post the entire 40k in one go so i have to break it up (part 2 is out tomorrow!!!) i hope you guys enjoy this, thank you for all the love on the teaser, i hope this is able to live up to the hype, thank you so much for being patient with me <33 (ty @toruro for encouraging me when i felt shit ab this gkjnrgvkjrng and beta-ing ofc)
As someone who could vomit at the mere thought of throw-up, you tried not to stare into the toilet bowl as you emptied your guts in this questionable club bathroom.Â
It was proving to be easier than youâd anticipated, naturally, when your eyes were blurred with bubbling tears. Were they because of your wretching or the feelings that churned in your heart? You canât be entirely sure, nor can you find yourself having the mental strength to figure out. Thereâs a banging on the door behind you, one that sends your already aching head into a hurling spin.Â
âOpen the door, I have water for you, itâll help!â You hear Mika blare from the other side, concern lacing her voice.Â
You try to blink the tears away but they cascade down your cheek anyway, rubbing at them furiously before preparing to haul yourself off the disgusting bathroom floor. Taking a deep breath was a horrible idea, you realize when an atrocious mixture of scents hit your nostrils, cringing visibly.Â
Washing your hands at the sink took you another five minutes, scrubbing furiously at your palms and nails with the dollar store soap the club graciously placed in a fancy dispenser, pumping more than a normal amount to rid yourself of the paranoia of tainted hands.Â
Unfortunately for you, your palms were tainted with entities beyond mere soap and waterâs powers.Â
It was evident with the way you exited the bathroom feeling perhaps worse than you went in. Mika was nowhere to be seen in the hall, moving along to the private room where the rest of the group was to find her springing up as you enter.Â
âYou werenât answering, so I left. Here, water, I told you to be careful with what you drink; you havenât had a bite to eat either.â She reprimands.Â
âSorry,â you smile sheepishly, not having a reasonable excuse to give her.Â
Joshua peeks over her shoulder, âYou feeling any better?âÂ
The water is slow to go down as you sputter before replying in a hoarse voice, âYeah. Way.âÂ
To be fair, the water did help. But it was you who was the problem, blaming the alcohol for the behaviour all your friends knew perfectly well where it was stemming from. Not a word was said though, for your sake or their own. You wrap up quickly after that, Joshua insisting to drop you off home himself, quoting how Seokmin would have his head if he left you in the hands of a taxi driver in this state â age gap be damned. You can only thank him as he pulls up to your destination, hoping youâll remember this in the morning to return the favour in the future.Â
âBefore you go, can we talk for a second?â he piques, halting you as you remove your seatbelt.Â
âSure, yeah. What is it?âÂ
âIâm not gonna ask if youâre doing alright, not when youâre gonna give me the same answer as always. ButâŚplease take care of yourself. Youâve been drinking quite a bit lately, and it canât be helping you at allâÂ
You listen to him silently, not a thought in your brain. But you nod anyway.Â
âThanks for looking out, Shua. IâmâŚIâm probably not gonna be going out for a while, youâre right,â you reply, quietly, a small smile on your face that you can only hope is reassuring.Â
âI donât mean lock yourself up, either. You donât give yourself a break and then try to make up for it by drinking your self faint every week, thatâs never gonna help you. You know that.â He speaks in a soft, soothing voice, a hand coming up to pat your hair before landing on your clasped hands on your lap. âYou know what, Iâll pick you up tomorrow night, we can go the fair just me, you and Seok-âÂ
âI have class tomorrow.âÂ
âLike showing up hungover is gonna help you retain any information. Just skip.âÂ
You sigh a deep exhale, deciding to simply be upfront. âI kinda just wanna stay home for a while, going outâs kinda making it worse. I think rotting in front of my laptopâs what I really need right nowâÂ
Throwing in a tinkle of a laugh, you hope youâve sold yourself.
âAlright,â he sounds slightly unconvinced but doesnât push you further, âIâll drop in to bother you tomorrow though, donât try stoping meâ
âOkay,â you say, smiling a little wider. âIâm gonna go now, goodnight.â
âWait!â he stops you once again, right before your about to shut the door. âHave you talked to Mingyu at all?âÂ
âThereâs nothing to talk about, Shua. NightâÂ
With that youâve slammed the door of his car shut, missing the ghost of a âgoodnightâ that leaves Joshuaâs lips as he watches you walk inside the building.Â
âAnd stop staying out so late at night! What were you supposed to do if Joshua wasnât there?â Seokmin rants as he walks back and forth grabbing you water and pills as you finish your forced breakfast.
âTake a taxi?â you suggest sarcastically.Â
âWhat? And get me called to the station to identify your body parts when some dude decides he wants to play cannibalistic butcher?â he screeches, and it has you wincing and grabbing onto your head at his volume. You dramatize it a little, hoping heâd shut it with his nagging if you gained some extra sympathy. He doesnât stop talking, but he does tone it down.Â
âWhatever, Iâm not going out anymore.â You push your plate and bowl away as you hop off the stool and stalk off to your room, making as much noise as possible in the process.Â
Your brother calls after you, but you donât stop. Your head was pounding,Â
âAre you gonna take your meds? HELLO? Or do you enjoy the feeling of having your head split open?â he slams open the door of your room mid-sentence, going on at your blanket-clad figure on the bed.Â
âIâm going back to sleep.â
âNo, youâre taking your fucking meds.â A cup of water is thrust into your hands as you pick up the pills from Seokminâs open palms, swallowing before he decides to shove it down your throat himself.Â
He waits on the edge of the bed, checking to make sure you actually swallowed the pill instead of hiding it under your tongue like youâve done since you were kids.Â
âIâm not stopping you from going out if thatâs what you think I mean,â he starts, a lot softer this time, and youâre taken back to your conversation with Joshua last night. âYouâve been going out and coming home wasted a lot more than normal lately. I donât know if itâs because your college agendas are finally catching up to you or what.â
âIâm justâŚMy friends are always out and I wanna be with them, itâs normal,â you grumble, disappearing deeper into your sheets.
âYouâd tell me if something was bothering you, right?âÂ
âYeah, yeah, now shoo. Your voice is making my head hurt worse, I doubt Advils are immune to your yapping.âÂ
âFine, fuck you tooâ he mumbles, leaving the room only to pop back in a second later. âMom called last night, told her you were at a study group. Might wanna call her back before she catches a flight herself.âÂ
You wave two fingers up in a salute from your flat position on the bed, hearing him close the door. You donât sit up until you hear the TV blare from the living room, knowing he had parked himself on the couch and has his attention diverted.Â
The headache wasnât actually that bad, you just really wanted to be left alone, and your brother had a habit to do the opposite when asked, so it had to be done.Â
What on Earth were you supposed to tell him, anyway? That his best friend in the whole world rejected his sister on the spot when she confessed her decades long feelings? That she was ruining her liver and kidneys every weekend over a rejection? By his best friend in the whole world?
Yeah, thatâs an easy conversation.Â
Snuggling into the covers you try not to think back to the abomination that was your birthday party just a few weeks ago, but your thoughts yank you there anyway, as if to remind you of every wretched detail of the encounter like it was wasnât already burned into your frontal lobe like a brand.Â
You were on a high; too happy, too excited. Itâs not like you were expecting anything for your first birthday at uni anyway, you were too old for pink blowout parties and too young for the madness of college level clubbing. You were excited for takeout with your brother, to sit in front of the TV for the rest of the night, maybe even stick a candle in one of your burgers and call it your cake. Plans were changed when you walked into your home, ready to wind down for the night and celebrate in your own way.Â
It was a full house, food and drinks everywhere, complete with a loud âSURPRISEâ as you walk through the door. You remember hugging both your brother and Mingyu when they tell you they did all of this for you, an overwhelming feeling overcoming you as you grip them tight, hoping itâll transfer all the gratitude you couldnât express.Â
Youâre breathless as the night progresses, trying hard to focus on the conversations at hand, trying to be a good host. Failing miserably, you canât force your gaze from wandering every few minutes, searching for Mingyu in the crowd, watching him move his mouth as he talked, throw his hair back as he laughed, smile that beautiful, beautiful smile of his, perfect teeth on display.Â
It had been bliss these past few weeks, the lingering smiles he would give you, the flirtatious attempts never gone unnoticed. The smoothest of words slipping right off his tongue as he gave you eyes that twinkled and sparkled and blew air directly into the embers in your heart. You would still yourself as they would happen, like the mirage would crack and shatter if you even dared to breathe; it felt unreal. After all these years, you realised soon, Kim Mingyu may have began to like you.Â
Youâd be lying if you said you were completely sober when it happened, drinks were passed around and as the birthday girl you didnât seem to have a choice to back down, already a little hot and wide eyed barely halfway through the night.Â
And when Mingyu doesnât interact with you all night, you go to him as the numbers in the house dwindled, cornering him as he collected bottles in the kitchen.
âHey!â, he sounds enthusiastic, âYou having fun yet?â
âYeah, thanks again for doing this.â your remember fidgeting with your fingers and nails, digging them into each other as you let yourself spew.Â
âAre you gonna say thank you at every chance for the next six months? It's your first birthday away from home. Besides it was Seokâs idea, I just helped out.â He had said, beaming.
âMingyu, can I talk to you about somethingâŚ?â
You sigh loudly as you replay the memory, face pushed into the covers as you bite back a scream at the blood rushing to your head.Â
Stupid. Idiot. Absolutely brainless.
âOh.â He had breathed out when you had spilled your entire heart out to him standing in that kitchen, visibly taken aback at your abruptness. âIâŚIâm sorry Iâm not quite sure what to say.âÂ
You still remember that sickening feeling, that big ball of junk and emotions that sank lower and lower in your abdomen, settling a deep hurt in your chest that made it difficult to breathe.Â
Laying in your bedroom, weeks after the fact, you can still feel your breathing go slightly erratic at the memory, hot tears springing your eyes, burning before you wipe them away. You were aware how baffling it was, how you were letting it affect you to this degree, but you justified it with the years you had remained quiet, yearning on the sidelines.Â
You deserved to wallow in this pit.Â
At least thatâs what you thought. But after last night you wonder if you had stopped indulging in the sorrow and let it ruin you instead. A sigh escapes you at the thought of ending yet another night in a dirty bathroom, makeup smeared and guts removed, misery becoming the only thing you were allowed to feel in the aftermath.Â
You reach for your phone on the bedside table, flicking through your unread messages, barely registering a word as you leave them opened and unanswered. There wasnât an ounce of willpower in you even after a full nightâs sleep, turning your phone off before shoving it in your bedside drawer, forgotten. You take a moment to stare at the ceiling, having no energy to get up to turn your lights off. Until the doorbell sounds.Â
Of course you knew who it was the second you heard, but the voice paired with your brotherâs conversing outside was enough to have you catapulting out of bed. You slap your hand over the switchboard, turning off all your lights, moving across the room to pull your curtains shut, cascading complete darkness in the room. You fly under the covers as a last effort to convince, covering your face with the sheets just as you hear a knock.Â
The door creaks open slightly as Seokmin calls out your name.Â
âAre you up? Mingyuâs here, he brought coffee.â He whispers slowly. You donât respond.Â
He calls out your name one more time before you hear the door click shut. You donât move till you hear his muffled voice on the other end, âSheâs knocked out, her head was hurting, better let her rest.âÂ
Heat pricks the sides of your face as your body finally relaxes, borderline embarrassed at how you were hiding from him like a middle schooler who thinks sheâs in love. Which you were at one point; now you're a college kid who thinks sheâs in love.
You try not to focus too much on the sounds coming from outside, burying under the covers to attempt at sleep for real this time. Eyes screwed shut, you canât help but open them at every other intonation. There was no way you could figure out what they were saying if you tried, between the door and the TV, it was all a taunting buzz in your ears.Â
You do end up falling asleep. But only after you hear the droning of the TV turn off, and the distinct goodbyes as the front door clicks shut.Â
Keeping to your promise, you stay away from late nights for the next couple of weeks. Joshua so far as commends you for declining invitations, offering dinner on him on one particular phone call.Â
âYou know, I was serious when I said I was proud of you.â Joshua voices solemnly as you attempt to cut a strip of meat onto the grill. You snort as a response.Â
âI wasnât like, an alcoholic, youâre making it sound worse than it was.âÂ
âIt was still bad for it to affect you in that way. Takes a lot to get back up from heartbreakâ
âEspecially one thatâs lasted for nearly a decade.â You sigh as you give up on the meat, handing the scissors and tongs over.Â
âAre we still talking about that?â He raises his eyebrows.Â
A smile makes its way to your face, nibbling on a radish, âNo.â
âGood. Because we need to talk about if we want our noodles hot or cold.â
âSeok! SEOK! Where the fuck did you put my pimple patches?â Your screams echo across the house yet garner no response. Opting to yank open the fridge, you dig through through the box of face masks to find them possibly laying at the bottom, forgotten. Seokmin bounds into the kitchen, towel in hand as he pats at his damp hair.
âWhat?âÂ
âNothing,â you huff, shoving the unfruitful box back into the cabinet, "you used up all the patches.â
âPatches? Pimple patches? Weâve been out for a month, just use this tube in the drawer.â Pulling open the drawer, he rummages for a moment before emerging with a sickly yellow tube of what looked like poorly marketed toothpaste.
âYou want me to put this on my face?âÂ
âYeah, it works, zit on my nose was gone by morning.â He stuffs the tube back in the drawer not before squeezing a small amount on his fingers to dab on your face.
âEw, get your dirty hands away from my face.â You grip his wrists before he tries to move in further.Â
He does nothing but shush you, shaking off your hands as you grumble in silence, letting him finger paint on your face. You move up to fix a roller on your head, undoing it before rolling the bit back in, resulting in another âtskâ emitting form your brothers concentrated face.
âOkay, enough! I donât have that many zits.â You pull away as Seokmin moves to wash his hands.Â
âAre you going to bed right now?â He asks as you move over to the door.
âYeah. Iâm not going to sleep, though.âÂ
âGyuâs coming over, you were asleep when he was here last too.âÂ
It seemed as though every bone in your body rattled against your flesh.Â
âWhen is he coming?â You ask quickly, frozen in your spot.Â
The doorbell rings.Â
âRight now, I guess.â He snickers to himself.
You can only watch in mild horror as he moves to open the door, words escaping you. You follow behind him, trying to stop him, yet not doing much other than reach the front door yourself, fingers frozen yet mildly trembling.Â
âWait!â You finally whisper-shout, âDonât open it!âÂ
Seokmin pauses to give you a look, âWhy? Heâs seen you look worse, itâs fineâ
The door wrenches open before you can protest any further, a cartoonish moment of the hunched figure of you, hands out in a nearly there grip. Youâve failed, and the chorus of âheyââs reach your ears in almost a mocking manner. Thereâs a conscious effort on your end to not look up too high, keeping to chest eye level for your own sanity. What you find once your vision clears from the white blur, is that thereâs not one, but two people at the door.Â
Mingyuâs brought a girl.Â
Standing behind the door meant there was no immediate attention on you, which should have been a perfectly good opportunity for you to book it to your room, but you donât. You stand there instead, staring at the back of their heads like a child in wonder.
Once you are noticed by your brother, he winces at your appearance, a silent apology, like he didnât know about this new guest either. Or he was apologising for what he was about to do next, you wouldnât know, because you wouldnât be hearing him out when you throttle him later.Â
âThis is my sisterâÂ
All three sets of eyes are on you now, a moment of silence as they take in your appearance. The grandma nightgown, in all its blue and collared glory, does absolutely nothing to boost your confidence in front of the very pretty lady, whose hair cascades down her back, whose skin stands as clear as a summer sky.Â
âHi!â She breaks the awkward silence first, âIâm Jia, itâs nice to meet you! Iâve heard a lot about the both of you.â
What?
âMingyu has a hard time keeping his mouth shut, Iâm not surprised.â Seokmin tries to joke as he motions for the couch in the centre of the room. You catch him kicking a stray sock out of the way as he urges them to sit.Â
With the way your brother is acting, you donât doubt this is his first time meeting this girl. Mingyu is yet to clarify why he would bring a friend to the house unannounced, but something tells you you already know. You remain on the sidelines, inching away to the hallway slowly, trying your hardest to not bring attention to yourself.
âI havenât seen you around campus ever, are you new?â Seokmin prods, his voice slightly on edge.Â
âOh, um-â Jia begins but is cut off by Mingyu as he speaks for her.Â
âJia doesnât go to our uni, we met at Seungcheolâs, weâve been dating for a couple months.âÂ
There it is.Â
âOh! Couple months? How come I didnât know?â You donât miss the hurt laced in your brother's words, your fists clenching slightly at the oncoming silence.Â
âThatâs on me, sorry. Itâs justâŚI didnât want anyone to know âcause I thought he was playing around when he said he liked me, I wanted to see if he was being real or not.â She laughs nervously, and you see the back of her head move as she talked. You canât help but note the arm thatâs swung across the back of the couch where she sat. âPlease donât be mad at him! I promise it was me that stopped him.â
You donât hear too much of what happens afterwards as you slip away into the crevice of your bedroom, standing in the entryway in absolute silence, attempting to absorb what you had just witnessed outside. Approaching the full length mirror on the other end, it takes a lot out of your to bring yourself to look straight into it, regretting it immediately as you acknowledge your appearance.Â
Of course, the woman who actually succeeded in winning over the man that rejected you had to witness you in the unappealing yellow paste that your brother graciously dotted all over your face, not leaving the giant rollers in your hair to cut you any slack either. You could cry about it, but you donât. Instead you lay back in your bed, sniffling in the dark, just as you had the last time Mingyu was over.Â
Itâs significantly easier to drown out the voices this time round, especially when your mind is preoccupied with a couple months. Your birthday was a couple months ago, does that mean they started dating right after that conversation? Or were they already offical and you had waltzed in with your princess dreams about your brotherâs best friend being in love with you.Â
It made perfect sense at the time, and no sense at all anymore as you wonder why on Earth he was being so forwardly flirty with you if there was another girl all along. Thereâs a bitter taste in your mouth as you recall how he had quit perceiving you altogether after that night, and you canât help but mentally commend Jia for testing him by keeping it quiet. Especially when he was going around flirting with his best friendâs sister.Â
It didnât take long for you to guage Mingyuâs reputation when you first dropped into university, the senior having made himself a reputation none less similar than he had in high school. He was popular, but with his outgoing personality and a face like that it was hard not to be liked. Your brother was right there beside him, living it up as carefree college kids, suddenly remembering he now had a little sister to tend to. You were grateful for the both of them for being there to help you take your first baby steps, all the rites of passage and which professors sucked the least, not leaving the leaky water fountain to never drink from.Â
That was when Mingyuâs (supposed) advances had begun.Â
Youâre projected back to first semester, when both of them had dragged you to the same couch outside, talking about an âimportant thing you should knowâ.Â
âYou walk into class one day, expecting nothing out of the ordinary. Your professor drones on as usual, your classmates look bored as usual, youâre tired as usual. But then!â Seokmin breathes in sharply, and you hear Mingyu bound to the other side of your vision, emerging on the opposite end of the room with a backpack swung over his shoulder.Â
âThe man of your dreams walks byâŚâ Seokmin continues and you snap your head towards him in a panic, suddenly afraid he had found you out. Heâs busy though, making ethereal hands in Mingyuâs general direction, while the latter walks in comedic slow motion like heâs in a K-drama b-roll, complete with passes over his hair and a nonchalant yet controlled expression.Â
âWhat is this about?â It comes out snappier than you had intended, but youâve had one scare already.Â
âJust!â your brothers hands turn from graceful to clenched, like it was you he was trying to squish you for interrupting him, âListen, alright?âÂ
âThe man of your dreams walks by,â he goes back to his narrator voice, âand you wonder where heâs been all your life. You start talking, youâre enamoured. You start thinking about introducing him to your parents, what your weddingâs gonna look like, what your kids are gonna look like!âÂ
Your face is becoming increasingly warped the more you listen to him speak, not being able to fathom where this was going.Â
âBut no!â Itâs Mingyu that speaks this time, pushing a jolt out of you as he slams the backpack on the floor, pointing directly at you for added effect, âYouâre better than that!â
âWhat the fuck-â you start, but are shushed by a physical finger on your lips as Mingyu shushes you. Seokmin slaps his hand away.Â
âOur point is, that youâre probably gonna come across someone who you think is your next boyfriend.â Your brother continues, âBut lucky for you, you have two seasoned professionals here to tell you that itâs nothing but fresherâs fever.âÂ
âItâs a new place, new people, loads of new experiences; youâre bound to latch on one of the first couple pieces of meat. Our advice is donât, because it will happen to you. But you also now know that your just in a deluded stage right now. Give it a semester before you start dating people, trust.â Mingyu finishes for Seokmin as he thumps down on the couch next to you.Â
âSo all of this was just another stay away from boys lecture?â You raise your eyebrows.Â
âYes and no. You can date whoever you want,â Seokmin answers coolly before quickly adding, âbut not right now.â
It was laughable, the thought of latching onto another person when youâd been trying exactly that for years. To have anyone catch your eye, to have anyone sweep you away from this madness that came in the form of Kim Mingyu. Neither of these seasoned professionals had a thing to worry about though, because you werenât latching on anything that came out of this institute. You had already done so, in a stage more impressionable than this, years and years before any of them knew of the dangers of young girls and new boys in their vicinity.Â
âOkay, I know youâre like on a self inflicted party ban and all thatâŚâ Joshua starts the second he places himself at your table, still haggard looking from jogging across campus.
âDonât even try.â You warn with filled cheeks.
âGirl, let him finish.â Nayeon chides next to you.Â
You exhale through your nose heavily, going back to pick at your tray as Joshua continues.
âCheolâs throwing a little party tonight to celebrate the end of midterms.â He starts, âYou should come, it's only gonna be a handful of people.âÂ
âA handful?â You repeat, unable to bite back the amusement in your voice.Â
âCome on, your brotherâs going as well! Youâll be fine, I promise weâll keep you in check.âÂ
âI donât need to be kept in check, Iâm fine.â You grumble.
âPerfect! Nothing stopping you then, Iâll pick you both up at 8.â The words are barely out of his mouth before heâs back to sprinting out the vicinity, garnering looks from oncoming traffic, off to his next pestering destinationÂ
âI donât think Iâd explicitly agreed.â You voice.Â
âHe got what he wanted.â Nayeon snorts, âWhatever, weâll get ready at my place after this.â
âWerenât you guys worried about me? Now youâre actively dragging me to parties.â You drop your utensils onto the tray.
âToo much of either isnât a good thing, you went from forgetting what home looks like to exclusively holing yourself up in there.â She stabs a piece of potato with a chopstick and tries to pry it in your mouth. âBesides, Cheolâs parties are always super intimate, theyâre all gonna be people you know, donât worry.â
âSuper intimateâ, as Nayeon had put it, had amounted to at least fifty people as you take in the crowd at the floor of the house. Despite not being packed to the brim, it was still coming out to look like a full house, random items already scattered across the floors in true frat party fashion.Â
âDo you want a beer?â Nayeon asks, dragging you to the kitchens by the hand as you crane your neck to spot people.
âUh, no. Is there juice?âÂ
âUm, thereâs a questionable looking fruit punch.â she wrinkles her nose at the blaring red bowl on the counter.Â
You sigh, grabbing a cup, âIâll risk it.â
Joshua was air the second he had walked in with you, whisked away to socialize with his own hoard of acquaintances, leaving both you and Nayeon to fend for yourselves. Youâre yet to spot your brother, granted youâd only been here a mere five minutes, his rowdy demeanor making him quite easy to spot in usual circumstances.Â
Taking a casual sip of the electric red liquid youâre forced to make a face as you register the flavour, alerting Nayeon, who was too busy fiddling through multiple crystal bottles.Â
âWhat? Is it bad?âÂ
âWhat the fuck is that?â You sputter in astonishment, wondering how the bowl was already half empty. âWhoâs drinking this stuff?âÂ
She grabs the cup from you before taking a gulp herself, emerging the same gagging mess you were, eyes watering at the taste. It seemed almost comical when Seokmin shows up behind her, waiting to greet only to find both of you doubled over. His eyes move over to the potion in Nayeonâs hand and passes a knowing look.
âHeâs brought The Whole Shabang out of retirement.â He states like it was the obvious answer.
Nayeon spits first, âAre we supposed to know what that means?âÂ
âCheol got drunk one time in freshman year and mixed every ounce of alcohol he owned into one big bowl of despair. We retired it last year when the bowl broke and stained his counters. But anyway, beginners are supposed to dilute it before downing it.â
âThatâs great and everything but why is it so red?â You ask.
Another voice speaks from behind you, turning around to find Seungcheol himself. âThereâs an entire thing of food colouring in there, gives it an edge donât you think?â
âIâm scared of you.â You deadpan, a sour expression remaining on your face.Â
Seunghceol is quick to suggest the backyard for some fresh air to distract from the flavour itâs left in your mouths, commenting on the nice weather. Neither him nor your brother stick around for too long though, dipping at the holler of their names somewhere inside. Youâre comfortable though, despite being blocked off by a concrete railing, the stairs make a nice haven for the both of you to lie down and stare into the clearer than usual sky. Cheol was right, it was nice outside.Â
âI canât lay down like this, I need to get a drink.â Nayeon announces not even five minutes later.Â
âWhy didnât you get one when we were there?â You groan, but she doesnât respond as she hops back inside, throwing a promise to be quick in the air behind her.Â
The wall supports you as you deflate into it, legs sprawled across the steps in disarray. Nobody could see you anyway, taking full advantage as you practically manspread. The side of the pool thatâs in your vision is empty by grace; calm save for the giant flamingo floaty that bobs itself into view from the edge of the wall you lean against. A breathy laugh leaves you at the sight.Â
The railing on your other side is mostly concealed, you can still make out the wicker sofa set, complete with an unlit fireplace. Itâs unoccupied, for the time being, as you register a conversation floating closer and closer to your ears. Wondering if Nayeon had brought friends, you stand up quickly to look over the railing to check for her face over the sliding door that leads inside.Â
Thereâs no Nayeon in sight.Â
But there is Mingyu.Â
His mere presence knocks your butt back onto the concrete the second you see him stumbling over the threshold with a hoard of his friends, nothing short of his picturesque party strut. There was little reason for you to hide from him at all, considering the very possible notion that he would look right past you if you happened across his line of sight. Space floating in, heâd ignore you for your sake or his own, perhaps even both.Â
For now, heâs seated himself with a few other people on the wicker sofas, leaving you hugging your knees to your chest, head on the concrete wall with the lingering feeling akin to that of a trapped mouse. Closing your eyes, you blow out air in an attempt to relax yourself, take light of the situation youâve found yourself in. You could get up and leave in this very moment, possibly go unnoticed if you stalked back inside before they began their rattle not meant for your ears.Â
And yet, you find yourself unable to move, not even when you hear their topic shift to Mingyuâs new beau. Suddenly you wish youâd moved inside the moment you saw him.Â
âWas it you that stopped Jia from coming to parties?â You hear somebody ask.
âWhy the fuck would I do that?â Mingyu grumbles, he pauses and you assume heâs taking a swing of his drink. âWe started going out and suddenly she didnât wanna come, thatâs fine though, it isnât her vibe anyway.â
Thereâs a snigger that moves across everybody seated, you hear loud thwack before Mingyu speaks again, âWhatâs so fucking funny?âÂ
âThis girlâs made you work for it, huh?âÂ
âIsnât that like, his brand? Donât look at me like that, youâre the one yapping about liking a challenge all the time.â
âYeah, remember Minji?âÂ
âI still think she was only pretending to not like you, her clique was always smacking at her to straighten up when youâd come over like we couldnât see everything.â You could almost hear the eye rolling.
âChange the subject, will you?â Mingyu proposes, sounding exhausted at the prodding already.
âI apologise for the ex talk and nothing else.âÂ
Thereâs a pause for another choke of laughter across the group, and you wonder what it was that they found so funny.Â
âI donât know if I should say thisâŚâ Somebody begins, but is cut off by Mingyu.
âThen donât say it.â He snaps, but you donât miss his own jest.Â
âI honestly thought you were gonna date Seokâs sister at some point. I mean, common consensus is that bagging your best friendâs sister is⌠what youâd call a challenge.â
What the fuck.Â
You feel your eyes drifting closed at the turn this conversation has taken, wishing to simply fall asleep at what itâs come to. Somebody speaks up.Â
âNah, thatâs like, the grand slam prize, that one comes after heâs done hanging with the side quests.âÂ
The situation is making itself out to be something out of a fever dream.Â
Mingyu tsks, and you note a jostle happening through the gaps of the railing. âIâm leaving.âÂ
You find yourself hugging yourself tighter, eyes shut like he wouldnât be able to see if you couldnât see him. Not that it was possible unless he peered directly through the railing in his peripheral.Â
âOKAY! Okay! Weâre kidding.â Thereâs a pause. âOkay, but reallyâŚâ
Another pause, this time longer. You hate how you can picture the ghost of an exasperated smile on Mingyuâs face, a bite of his lip perhaps, dejected at the shoulder with his longing, distant look. You hate how your mind fills the gaps of him the railing wonât allow you to see.Â
âSeokâs not the type to beat me up if I dated his sister. And besidesâŚâ He sighs, halting his words.
âBesides what?â Somebody chimes in.
âIâm not interested in going after someone whoâs chased my tail for the past fifteen years.â
Thereâs a chorus of hisses and ohâs, a few bounts of laughter in their disbelief. You can feel your stomach twist, heat pooling your figure.Â
It wouldâve been better if his words had hit you like a gong, maybe the aftermath wouldnât have felt as horrid. But the connotations crept up on you like a million spiders making their trek up to your brain, waiting to stick their crawlers in the bits that would allow those words to hold meaning for you. You can feel the electric red of Seungcheolâs god awful concoction begin to rise up in your throat like bile; burning, imprinting.Â
Mingyu had said what he had said. And everything was in itâs place, in finality.Â
Despite the nearly four year age gap, you and Seokmin had co-existed without the semblance of an older-younger duo. It was mostly owed to Seokmin's shy nature, and his difficulty making solid friends. That, however, didnât last long as your brother progressed through middle school.Â
You had met Mingyu for the first time when Seokmin brought his first ever friend from school home for dinner.Â
Despite being barely nine years old and half spoon fed by your mother at the same table, the prospect of Seokminâs new friend was equal to you having a new friend â which caused enough excitement as you brought your favourite cartoon books into your brotherâs room to show this new person after dinner.Â
As the following year progressed, you saw less and less of your brother, and more and more of newer faces of âfriendsâ that you werenât allowed to play with. It was distressing enough to be told by your mother that something of your brotherâs was not yours, but even more so when you were kicked out of the room by Seokmin himself for the very first time.
It wasnât as trauamtising as it felt in the moment, because you grew to find your own group of friends, doing the same as youâd kick your brother out for being annoying â except unlike you, he was doing it on purpose.Â
Mingyu was a recurring face, one that was nicer to you on the days your brother was meaner, more forgiving on the days your relatively new middle school was relentless. He fit himself in your life easier than you had realised, more comfortable than you soon found you were comfortable with.
âDid you take my guitar picks?â Your brother bursts into your room just as your about to fall into your after school nap, grip loosening on the book in hand.Â
Jolting awake at the sound of loud voice, you donât respond as you attempt to orient yourself.Â
âWell? Did you?â He demands again.
âWhat? No, I donât know where your stupid guitar pick is.â You grumble. âGet out.â
âItâs not in my room that has to mean you took it, where is it?âÂ
Mingyu emerges from behind him, hand on his arm as he tries to pull his iron grip off of your doorway. âItâs probably just in your bag, you havenât even looked!âÂ
Kicking the covers off, you sit up in a disarray, progressively annoyed at your brother for ruining your perfect descent into dreamland.Â
âI donât have shit, you just suck at keeping tabs on your stuff!â You grit.Â
Thereâs a stagnant pause as he stares at you from the doorway. You can sense it coming. And it does.Â
âMOM! SHE JUST SWORE!â He yells into the hallway, bounding to where your mother was, leaving an unsure Mingyu in your doorway.
Surprisingly, you were just glad he was gone, wanting to melt back into the covers. You make eye contact with Mingyu. âI really donât have it.âÂ
âItâs probably in there somewhere, heâs just not looking.â He mumbles, standing a little awkward. âUm, go back to whatever it was, Iâll close your door.â
He does so, allowing you to finally slump back into your pillows to go back to your nap.
You find out quickly that you couldn't sleep after that.
The controller is becoming increasingly uncomfortable to hold. It doesnât help that youâre brother is chewing on his four additional pieces of gum behind you on the couch, making obnoxious comments about your gaming form.Â
Youâre also sitting a foot away from Kim Mingyu on the floor, with whom youâre forced to battle out on Mario Kart.Â
âWhyâre you clicking the buttons so hard, chill out.â You heat Seokmin say, continued by his wet chomping right by your ear.Â
âHow hard is it to chew with your mouth closed?â Mingyu grits.
âWhat? Like this?â Seokmin leans over to Mingyu, chewing even louder, mouth wrenched open and closed right into his ear. Mingyu makes a sound before falling to his side, covering his ears at the ghastly sound, pushing him back with his free hand to shut him up.
You barely crack a smile at the unfolding, watching them continue to wrestle half on the floor. Itâs noisy when you set your controller down, chest heavy, unfolding your legs to walk into the hallway to your room. Unnoticed.Â
You only reemerge to feed yourself, inspecting the fridge for possible leftovers. Settling on an apple, youâre closing the fridge when you see Mingyu walk in, seemingly taken aback to see you there. You freeze with your mouth still attached to the apple to take a bite.Â
âOh! Whereâd you go when we were playing? Didn't notice you gone till I got him to spit that wad of gum out his mouth.â
âUh, just tired. Took a nap.âÂ
He hums in response and you're just about to leave when he starts talking again.Â
âHey, did you move the popcorn somewhere else? Couldâve sworn it was in here last week,â he mumbles as he rummages through a cabinet.Â
âOh. Um. Itâs in the pantry.â You move before you can think, grabbing the box and slamming it on the counter, pausing briefly before reaching for the popcorn bowl and setting it on the counter next to it. âHere.â
You donât wait for a reply before grabbing your apple and moving out the kitchen, only to bump into your brother at the door.Â
âWhereâve you been?âÂ
âNapping,â you say, moving around him to go your own way but are stopped yet again as he calls for you.Â
âWeâre gonna watch a movie! You can lie on the couch.âÂ
Turning around, you catch sight of your brother still in the doorway, and more intriguing, Mingyu also expecting an answer from inside the kitchen behind him. You gulp as you attempt to remain casual.
âNah, Iâm good. You guys have fun.âÂ
Youâre nearly at your door when you hear your brother speak. âShe didnât even ask what we were watching.â
Nayeon catches up with you before you notice, pulling your headphones away from your ears to announce her presence, not slowing down as you walked to campus.Â
âAre you still upset about that Mingyu thing?â She asks when noting your silent demeanor. âWe talked about this, come on.â
âYeah and we concluded that itâs not an easy thing for me to just get over.â You huffed.
âYou know what heâs likeâŚâÂ
âWhich is why I shouldâve seen this all coming.â You turn around the corner with her.
âThatâs not what I meant either.â
âI donât know what came over me that day. I was doing so well for so long and I had to go ruin it because Iâm â I deluded myself into thinking I had a chance.â Youâre breathing heavily when you find a table in the air conditioned common room, yanking your bag off and slumping into the sofa. âNone of this wouldâve happened if I just shut the fuck up.âÂ
âWhat wouldnât have happened?â Seungcheol plops down next to Nayeon, butting into the conversation.Â
âArenât you intrigued.â Nayeon muses.Â
âEspecially when itâs none of my business.âÂ
âCharming.âÂ
âAnywho,â he sighs, throwing himself back against the couch. âIâve been tasked with rounding people up for an assignment.â
âAre you gonna experiment on us?â you ask, referring to his chemistry major.Â
âNah, this is for an elective. Faculty needs volunteers for a photography class.âÂ
âSo they need models?â You ask.
âI mean, anyone who signs up is automatically a model, so yeah they need models.âÂ
âAre we getting paid?âÂ
âYou get to say you modeled for me.âÂ
âHow convincing.â Nayeon deadpans.Â
Youâre stifling a snicker as you see Joshua walking up to where you were sat, planting himself next to you.Â
âWhatâre we talking about?â He asks, pulling his laptop out almost immediately.
âNothing, just how Seungcheol needs a reality check,â you sigh.Â
He barely acknowledges the comment, going straight to business typing away. âHey, you're staying for the summer right?âÂ
âEw,â Seungcheol voices.Â
âI am,â You confirm.Â
âFor what?â He sputters.Â
âIs this you offering to pay for a round trip?âÂ
He silences quickly after that, giving room for Joshua to ask his next question.Â
âAre your parents coming for your brotherâs grad?âÂ
âMhm, only for the night, though.â
âOh, did you hear back from the bookstore too?â he asks.Â
âIâm gonna apply right before break, Iâm swamped right now.âÂ
âLet me know when you do, the restaurant might need another hire, you could work there if you want.âÂ
You make a face. âAppreciate the sentiment but I donât think Iâm in the right state of mind to be working in customer service.âÂ
Joshuaâs hands freeze over his keyboard as he breathes out a delayed laugh. Nayeon mimics him.
âRight state of mind?â Seungcheolâs eyebrows are furrowed. âWait, what were you talking about before I sat down again-âÂ
Heâs cut off by a voice bellowing your name from across the common room. All four of you perk up at the sound, locking in on Mika aggressively pointing her wrist at you from yards away. You sit up with a jerk, checking the time. You were nearly thirty minutes late for your lecture.
âJosh, move.â You basically climb over him to get out of your seat, waving a hasty goodbye as you sprint to an exasperated Mika.Â
âIâve been waiting outside the hall for ages, you said weâd go in together!â she chides as you both speedwalk.Â
âSorry, I lost track of timeâŚâ You huff out a breath. âI just started talking aboutâŚwhatever.âÂ
âWhyâd you have that face on in there?â she asks.
âHuh? Oh, I was-â
âNevermind, I donât wanna know.â She picks up the pace and reaches the door before you do, rendering it impossible for you to speak to her after that.Â
Youâve forgotten about it by the time you come home to an empty house, both Mika and Nayeon in your arms. It doesnât take long for them to make themselves comfortable on the couch, looking at you expectantly like children waiting to be fed. You do that, courtesy of the half eaten pizza that sits on the coffee table.Â
âI think you need to get drunk,â Nayeon voices from her end of the couch.Â
Mika is immediate with her response, âDonât encourage her.âÂ
âHey!â You pout, âI havenât gotten drunk in a while.â
âKeep it that way,â she shudders, âdonât need another Mingyu fiasco.âÂ
Your chewing slows at the sound of his name, a strange feeling settling in your stomach at the thought of him. Setting down your half eaten slice, you brush off your fingers.Â
âI meanâŚâ Nayeon starts after a long pause.Â
âWe donât. Need another Mingyu fiasco, I mean.â You cut in.Â
âIf only heâd learn to shut up.â Nayeon grumbles, a sour expression on her face.Â
Mikaâs been shifting looks between the both of you, seemingly confused. âAm I missing something?â Â
Despite not having the intention, you find yourself telling her what you heard while enclosed in the staircase. You attempt to keep it concise, for the sake of your own sanity, but Nayeonâs grumbling is only pushing you deeper into a rant. Youâd be lying if you said you didnât let a couple frustrated tears make their way down your face.Â
Mikaâs response as brisk as your explanation was passionate, brushing over the topic quickly before you got too heated. You appreciated it.Â
âHave you considered signing up for the photography thing?â Mika asks.
âYou know, I was thinking about that too.â Nayeon pulls a finger up in signed patience to wait till she finished the remaining pizza in her mouth. âYou should do it. Itâll put your mind offâŚhim. Youâll be busier too.â
âI have a million things to do, Iâm busy enough.â You retort.Â
âYouâre busy studying at home. Where he could drop in at any point of day.â She points.Â
Your open your mouth to rebut again, only to close it as you fail to find a reason to deny her point. âOkay, still!âÂ
âJust â think about it, okay. Itâll put more on your plate but maybe itâll help.â
That was the last of your Mingyu talk, not that you could carry on when your brother comes slumping into the house after his class, stealing a slice of pizza as he makes his way to his room. Heâs slumped at the shoulders, and you egg him to take a nap before he collapsed on the living room floor.Â
Both Nayeon and Mika are quick to leave after that, leaving you with leftover pizza and your thoughts.
You sprawl your things out on the coffee table, taking advantage of the silent house to get some work done. Nayeon was right, as you think of the prospect of Mingyu entering at any given moment to bother your brother as a constant threat.Â
Itâs not until your prepping dinner with Seokmin that the project is brought up again.
âThereâs leftover Chow Mein Mingyu made yesterday, shove that in too.â He yawns as he pushes the box over.Â
You can only stare at the box in mild agitation, contemplating if you should simply chuck it into the garbage chute. Unfortunately, by experience, you knew Mingyu made really good Chow Mein, so you begrudgingly slide the opened box into the microwave to heat up, deciding youâd push Seok to eat it before you have a chance to take a bite.Â
Itâs silent while you eat, Seokmin still in a daze from his earlier nap, shoving spoonfuls of noodles in between bites of pizza. Itâs not until your halfway through eating before he jolts up slightly like heâd just remembered something.
âDid you hear about that volunteering thing from the photography department? They want models for some project.âÂ
âOh, yeah.â You pause, thinking back to what Nayeon had proposed. âAre you gonna sign up?âÂ
âNo, but you should.â
âI donât know, I still have a lot of prep for finals.â
âYou get extra credit if it helps,â he notes.Â
That was news to you. Thereâs a frown on your face as you deny, âNo, you donât.âÂ
âTheyâre doing it âcause they werenât getting the response they wanted. I found out just now too, theyâre gonna put it up on the bulletin tomorrow. Might wanna decide before then.âÂ
There were no questions asked after the realization, blue light of the laptop casting your face aglow in the darkened room as you hit the big blue Confirm button on the website. Skimming through the subsequent email, you find you wonât be needed till next week, the date and time making itâs way to your calendar.Â
Now, if you had known what the next week truly held for you, there was no doubt youâd be sending in a cancellation email at first chance.Â
But you didnât know. So you simply went to bed, falling asleep to the vague idea of searching for modeling tips on youtube during the coming weekend, entertaining the mild possibility that this might be the thing that puts you at peace at last.Â
The photography classes are held in regular lecture rooms, as you find out as you file into the sparingly filled hall at the date your calendar has graciously alerted you for. There was an image of a larger, more spacious area for a discipline pertaining to the arts, yet to be fair, the idea of having to create this form of art within a four walled containment did seem a little counter productive.Â
Nonetheless, you find yourself seated in a spare chair, waiting for the clock to hit nine on a Saturday morning for the shuffling professor at the front of the room to begin. Your eyes make passovers across the gradually filling room, searching for a semblance of Seuncheolâs bright blond hair to wave him over. Thereâs no sign of him five minutes before the minute hit twelve, and youâre thinking about slipping to the restroom before it can to kill the remaining time.Â
Thereâs another person filing into the room as you rise from your chair, and you pause in attempt to recognize Cheol in the grey zip up.
Except you donât find Seungcheol, not at all.Â
Mingyu is walking into the classroom, gaze sweeping across the hall as he seats himself in the front bottom row, head thrown back as he sifts through his perfect hair with his fingers.Â
You aren't sure why your brows furrowed like they did, or why you planted your butt back onto the chair with the force that you did; especially when all you wanted to do was book it out of the room in full velocity.Â
He was taking this class. Of course you knew that, especially when it was all he would yap about at any point he graced your presence.Â
You can feel your purpose in the room fade to nothing as you register him as a unit. You want to blame someone, but you know itâs all you fault. You knew heâd be here; if your mind had only thought fit to remind you at any point in the past week.Â
In regular Mingyu fashion, if heâd seen you, he does nothing to show it as you find him unraveling a loose thread off of his jacket. You keep your eyes on him, remaining mortified at your blatant disregard to the information that Mingyu was also in this class. Come to think of it, it was probably Mingyu who told Seokmin about the added credit in the first place. You want to kick yourself for not questioning your brotherâs apparent magical source of information.Â
Thereâs nothing that can be done as you feel Seungcheol finally slip into the seat next to you just as the professor in the front of the room begins to speak. Youâre not in the right headspace to make conversation, so you're grateful for the small acknowledgment as the professor begins to drone.Â
âEach student has been given a theme to work with, theyâre all different and given to the people whom I saw fit for the job. Youâll be receiving your packets with your theme today, so remember to pick them up from the front desk before you leave,â she begins.Â
âAs for your models,â she switches to the next slide over to reveal a spreadsheet full of names. âTheir names will be right next to yours, the photography students.âÂ
The entire room lurches forward as a unit, eyes squinted and whispers exchanged as they search for their partners in the sea of names. Seungcheol is zooming in on the picture he took with his phone, eyes zooming over to find his name.Â
âHey, I found yours!â he announces, moving the phone over to you.Â
Heâs zoomed into your full name on the screen, and your moving the picture aside to see the name across from it. Except, you find you wish you hadnât.Â
âKim, Mingyu.Â
If you needed more confirmation that the universe was simply against you, youâd gotten the message as you prayed the letters would morph into something else before your very eyes.Â
You seem to have been staring at the name for too long, because Seungcheol snatches his phone back from your grip to see for himself after you refused to answer his questions of what the name next to yours was.Â
âOh, itâs Mingyu! Thatâs easy, you're basically related.â
You wanted to slap him.Â
Before you can stop him, heâs yelling the boyâs name across the room amidst the growing chatter, the biggest, stupidest grin on his face. âMingyu! I found your model, sheâs right here!Â
You wanted to squeeze Seungcheolâs neck till his head popped off.Â
Mingyu turns around at the call, registering his friendâs words despite the growing noise. He registers you and you watch as he turns his head back at the projection, like he was confirming it was true.Â
Of course heâs as petrified as you are, if not more. But the embarrassment of his apparent disbelief made its hot way into your stomach and chest nonetheless, your breakfast threatening to make its way back up.Â
By the time the professorâs done with her bit and the room has begun to file out, youâve found yourself standing outside the lecture hall in uncomfortable movement, shifting your weight between both feet and fiddling with the straps of your bag. Every passing face sends a jolt though your stomach as you calculate how jarring it would be if you left right this second without seeing him.Â
You're counting his steps inside your head, how heâd shuffle for his name on the packet heâs meant to receive, counting in any conversation heâd start with a friend or with the professor. A thought occurs to you, and you wonder if he was searching for you inside. Youâre weighing between walking inside and leaving altogether when he makes the decision for you, walking out of the room, booklet in hand.Â
There goes the toast blaring its way back up your esophagus.Â
âHey,â he says unceremoniously.Â
You respond with an unreasonably meek âHi.âÂ
âSeok didnât tell me you signed up for this.â He points casually.Â
Well, Seok doesnât need to tell you everything.Â
âOh, I told him while he was like half asleep, pretty sure he thought he dreamt it.â
Mingyu snorts a little at that, a slight smile appearing on his face as he pictures a sleepy Seokmin.Â
âI can imagine,â he says, before heâs brought back to the matter at hand by you.Â
You clear your throat before you begin to talk, expression remaining neutral. âDo we need to get started right away?âÂ
âOh.â He seems a little taken aback at your forwardness. Like he didnât know why you didnât want to make small talk with him. âUh, I donât even know what theme I have yet. Iâll read over the packet and plan a couple things out before you have to come in.â
âThatâs great.â You hold on the straps of your tote. âText me when you need me.â
With that, you had spun on your heel and stalked away, not leaving room for him to retort with anything at all. You donât look back.Â
Nayeon can do nothing but gape as she watches you hold back frustrated tears, picking apart the grass under you as you curse the heavens for your horrible fate. Sheâs absorbing the situation as you wallow, finding the words to say.
âFuck, this is my fault,â she breathes out.
âNo!â You gasp out, furiously wiping away the irritating tears. âItâs not. I just forgot, itâs my own fault. You were right for trying to get me to do it, it justâŚâ
âYou canât ask to change partners?â she asks.
âI canât!â You wail, âIâm supposed to not care, how is this me not caring?âÂ
It was ridiculous. Truly. You were sobbing like a child over this, screaming about wanting to not care. But you did care. Too much. Nayeon can do little but hold you as you sniffle into her lap, feeling sick to your stomach at your own childish behaviour.Â
âWhy am I crying about this, this is stupid.â
âYouâre stressed, hon, thatâs it. Youâve got a lot going on and this just multiplied it.â Sheâs running a soothing hand over your back. âJust let it out, you need it.â
You emerge from your hunched position to sit up straight, sniffling a little less as you calm down. âShould I withdraw from the project?âÂ
âI mean, if you really want to,â she says softly.Â
âBut?â You sense her apprehension.
âBut, maybe you should give it a go.âÂ
You can only blink at her with wet lashes.
âThink of it this way. You need to⌠build resistance, keep yourself around him regardless. Thereâs bound to come a point where you start to feelâŚnothing.âÂ
âAre you trying to work exposure therapy on me?âÂ
âMaybe? If thatâs what it means. If you take yourself out of the project, it shows that you care. You need to pretend to not care before you can stop feeling the real thing.âÂ
Thereâs a pause as you attempt to find reason in her words.
âListen, I may be talking out of my ass, and if you do end up doing it, itâs gonna be hard â like a lot, butââ
âNo. Youâre making sense.âÂ
âI am?â She blinks, taken aback at the realisation that you may be listening to her. You nod quietly, âYouâre right, I canât keep running away.âÂ
âSo, youâre gonna do it?â She confirms with wide eyes.
Once again, you find it within yourself to nod.Â
Yeah. You were gonna do it.
Being in Mingyuâs presence and feeling nothing may be the goal, but you realise quickly itâs going to take you a while to restrain the trailing eyes that follow him wherever he goes. Nayeon had warned you, but you realise you may be slightly ill-prepared.Â
The theme is light. Vague to you but he doesnât seem too bothered by it. He isnât looking at you as he talks, eyes darting between the laptop screen and the plethora of papers heâs scattered on the coffee table. âI donât really have a colour preference for this one but a a deeper blue or a purple would fit pretty well with the sunlight on here.â
You can only nod along in mild understanding, most of your effort exerted on trying to keep your eyes on the screen where heâs pulling up a color wheel. âI probably have something.âÂ
âDo you still have that button up Seok bought you? The one with the stripes?â
You recall the deep blue shirt your brother had gotten you for your first in class presentation, picturing it hung still in your closet. âUh, yeah I do. Iâll wear it.â
âBring options, whatever fits the colours. No turtlenecks or crewnecks thoughâŚâ Mingyu continues to talk, taking notes for you in the process. Your mind, however, is somewhere else.
You hate how your mind takes you to a murkier place, one where the thought of him retaining memory of your closet pieces unprovoked has your neck tingling and your cheeks lifting. Trying to snap out of it before he notices your dazed expression, you pretend to flip through the couple papers in front of you, noting nothing.Â
âOther than thatââ heâs cut off by his phone ringing on the table. Both your gazes dart to the caller ID, and you immediately wish you hadnât as you register the pink heart on the end. Jia was calling.Â
He barely spares you a glance as he excuses himself in a mumble, something about being back in a second. You watch him leave through the cafe altogether, emerging on the other end of the glass walls in your direct vision. For the nth time that day, you find it impossible to tear your eyes away from his positively elated face, teeth out on display as talks to his girlfriend. You wonder what theyâre talking about, if her face is beaming like his own, wherever she is.Â
You zone out as you wonder what itâd be like to be the receiving end of an expression like that. To have something within you to be worth his smile, his mumbled pardons and his uninterrupted space. Thereâs a part of you that wonders if its greed â youâve gotten to see him nearly everyday for the past decade, perhaps youâve run your tickets dry.Â
You realise quickly that Mingyu is no longer in your line of sight as you feel a ruffle on the chair as he sits back on his seat.Â
âI think we can wrap up here, let me take the first couple shots before I can see where to go with it afterwards.â
You sense his eager want to leave, and you cannot help but beat him to it for your own sake.Â
âAlright. Iâll see you friday then.â SLiding out of your seat, you make a halfhearted attempt at shuffling his papers in a neater pile, throwing him a half smile before grabbing your bag.
He isnât watching you leave, you know that. Yet you find yourself refusing to slow down or look back till you round the corner, letting your shoulders finally slump and your pace to come to a temporary halt. It takes you another beat before you begin walking again, breathing in slowly as you navigate your way through the moderately crowded sidewalk. Nearly ramming into a fire hydrant, you shake off the seize that remains in your body, picking up the pace hoping itâd promote less thoughts.
It works, as you unlock your front door, finally shaking off the autopilot. Shifting to the kitchen is easy, rummaging the cabinets for your hidden stash of moonpies with the intention to devour the family box whole. Youâre contemplating texting Seokmin to bring you actual food as you make your way to your bedroom, wanting nothing more than to let your covers absorb all the feelings that make you human.Â
You find it unfortunate as you catch sight of yourself in the full length mirror and the outfit youâd put together before you had left. Your mind goes back to pandemonium as you take in the details, wondering why on earth youâd put in so much effort for a conversation that lasted less than an hour. You tear your eyes away before you begin to truly hate yourself, ripping your jewelry off as you make a beeline to wash your face clean of the makeup youâd put on.Â
It becomes increasingly difficult to look at yourself even in the bathroom mirror, moisturizer going on more aggressively than whatâs good for you. You feel a sting in the back of your eyes and owe it to the face wash.Â
Itâs easier once youâre in bed, your laptop at the ready, and a text on its way as you bug your brother to bring you your favorite burger and milkshake combo. You put your immediate faith in your moonpies for now as you rip the first one open, letting the sweetness bring you a deluded happiness.Â
âHis name hurts.â Your voice comes out echoey, the sound reverberating in the cavern of your chest. The shot on the table is inviting, but you canât help but feel nauseous at the thought of downing it. Your fizzled out sprite is being good to you, so you let it.
âHearing you talk about him hurts,â Mika slurs, slumping down onto the beanbag sheâs dragged onto the scene, joining you and Nayeon next to the couch.Â
Letting out a loud sigh that you doubt she can hear over the bass booming across the house, you settle to rest your head back on the couch backrest, staring into the ceiling. âImagine what itâs doing to me then.â
âI donât need to.â You can hear the exasperation in her voice.Â
âOh, hey, Hao!â Nayeon drags next to you and you lift your head up to see Mikaâs boyfriend join her on the already tiny beanbag. He huffs out a hey between a slight smile, slumping almost entirely on his girlfriend. She pats his hair in silent regard.Â
âI read this research paper about how they can delete the memories out of your brain squiggles,â Nayeon pops in.
âSince when do you read academic material for interest?â Minghao mumbles, fingers busy playing with Mikaâs hair.
The pair continue to bicker as your eyes trail across the moderately packed house, the party looking more lowbeat than any other Seungcheol extravaganzas. Not that you were complaining, but when you spot a certain someone, itâs hard not to.Â
Mingyu files into the kitchen with your brother in tow, beaming face evident over the island as he pours himself what looks like orange juice. Your mood is instantly soured.
âWhat study was that again?â You poke at Nayeon, the image of the man you wished for gone burned into your forebrain. She glances over to the open kitchen and realises what youâre talking about, coming around with a face of her own.
âThat oneâs gonna be a hard one to scrub out. But itâs okay, even the toughest stains succumb to bleach thatâs strong enough,â she sighs. Youâre barely listening to her analogy, not when heâs standing right there rendering it impossible for you to look anywhere else.Â
âYou sound like a commercial.â You can almost hear the crinkle in Mikaâs nose as she comments, and you canât help but breathe out a laugh.Â
The rest continue with their conversation as you remain quiet for most of the exchange, eyes filling your heart heavy with the way they remain glued to the figure far out into the kitchen. It was less about the fact that you just wanted to look at him and more of how it was forcing you to think about your predicament; something that was weighing you down yet something you couldnât help.Â
You canât be entirely sure how long you managed to stare without getting caught, but when Mika calls your name out harsher than expected, you snap around to divert your attention.Â
âHuh?â
âSixth timeâs the charm, huh? Get it together, heâs not gonna look at you,â she huffs as she slumps back onto the beanbag, alone this time as you note that Minghao is gone.
It takes you a moment to gather what she had said, mouth gaping open and close as you try to conspire a proper response. âI wasnât tryingââ
âNo. Save it. It was my fault for thinking I could sit here without having to sit through more of your Mingyu bullshit.â Sheâs shuffling out of her bean bag with mediocre difficulty, exasperation on her face as she trudges away to sit with her boyfriend and his friends on the seats on the middle of the floor.Â
The air seems to have knocked out of your chest as you find the capacity to process what just happened. Seemingly forgotten Nayeon was also here, you note the hand she places on your elbow as a sober attempt to get you to look at her.Â
The rest of the night passes in a nauseous blur, none that you could really make sense of. You bid Nayeon goodbye as you assured her youâd go home with your brother, waving goodbye to blurred taxi lights as she leaves you alone in front of a dwindling house.Â
The breath you let out is shaky as your feet remain planted on the concrete, the remnants of tonight passing over you as they came. Deciding you owed it to yourself, you let the tears well up in your eyes. As tired as you were of crying over what was essentially the same thing over and over again, you let yourself tire yourself out once more.Â
The party was over, and you knew that because you were walking home alone, hoping Nayeon would forgive you for lying to her. But you couldnât possibly explain the tear stains on your cheeks to your brother, not when he knew nothing. It was better that way; you refuse to be the person that potentially ruins a friendship thatâs lasted longer than any other. Â
You try to keep your sniffling to a minimum as you trudge slowly in the dark, not bothering to wipe your tears. Your stomping grows louder the more you grow frustrated with your thoughts, and it proves not too well for you. Thereâs a pair of headlights throwing light onto the oncoming street, illuminating you in the process. You want to kick yourself as the realisation settles in, praying the car would simply pass you. Considering the late hour and the fact that you were alone is hitting you at the worst time, wondering if you could pretend to make a call as you walked.Â
Itâs a black sedan that rolls up next to you, slower than whatâs considered a normal speed on an empty street. It honks and you nearly halt, owing to the shake that passes through your knees. It honks again, and you canât help but look to the side to find a window rolled down.Â
Mingyu sits on the driverâs seat, leaning over to the empty passenger side to grab your attention.Â
âThe Uberâs free! So is the driver,â he yells out the window. âHop in.â
âIâm alright. I kinda wanna walk.â You shift your weight between your feet, the distance adding an awkward feel.Â
âWasnât asking. Itâs the middle of the night, Iâm not letting you walk alone.â As he speaks, another car passes from behind him, slowing down. You note the look the other driver is giving you through the window, and itâs enough to convince you to step into Mingyuâs car.Â
âI think weâre way past the point of formalities, donât know why you hesitated.â He chuckles as he motions for you to click on your seatbelt. You fumble with it for a moment, his own fingers coming to the rescue to latch it on. You retract your fingers before they can brush with his own any further.Â
Settling into your seat, you choose to look forward as he picks up speed. âUhm, just wanted to walk, it was nice outside.â
âTake someone with you next time, itâs nearly midnight,â he warns.Â
Thereâs a twinge of annoyance that emerges in the back of your mind for some reason, despite knowing full well that he was right. You just didnât want to hear it from him.
Itâs silent for a bit as the radio plays an uncharacteristically upbeat tune, prompting you to wonder if it was just you who felt the atmosphere pressing in on your chest.
âDid you not bring your car today?â he asks out of the blue, eyes remaining on the road as you glance up at him. One look at his side profile and youâre turning your gaze away.
âNo, itâs at the workshop. I came with Nayeon.âÂ
âWhy didnât you leave with her?â
âIâŚâ You pause. âI told her I was gonna go with Seok.â
âHm. That didnât happen.â
âItâs like I said,â you mumble.
He hums again in response, dropping the subject.
âListen, are youâŚare you okay?â he starts again and it has you looking back up at him.Â
âWhy wouldnât I be?â You try to hide the bitterness in your tone but it proves difficult.
âI couldnât help but overhear but I was sitting right there. Hao was talking to Mika about something sheâd said to you, aboutâŚâ He trails off. âI mean, you looked a little upset, I just wanted to ask if you were okay.â
You bit your tongue. Hard.Â
He knew you were staring at him, he knew you werenât over him. He knew you were still standing on the same square confinement from months ago. Never changed.Â
âIâm fine,â you reply, snappier than you had intended.Â
âAre you sure? I felt like I shouldâve said something but Nayeon was right there so I thoughtâŚâ He sounds unsure and when you see him look at you, with eyes filled with an emotion that makes you nearly gag, you almost lose it. You did not want him to pity you. Nor care for you; especially when it came from a place that nullifies your feelings. You didnât want him to care for you for the sole reason that you were his best friendâs sister.Â
âMingyu, I think itâs best if you drop it.â
âOf course. But it might help if you wanna, you know, feel your feelings.âÂ
Fuck no, you werenât crying in front of him. Not when you're sure heâs noticed the tear stains on your makeup.
âMingyu, I said drop it. I donât need your help, I donât need to feel anything, I need you stop feeling like youâre obligated to care about me because youâre not.â The words come tumbling out before you can stop them, irritation laced in every snap and dent.
He says your name in an attempt to smooth you over. It only lands him in more trouble.
âNo, listen, I get it. Youâre uncomfortable about everything but you feel like you need to check up on me at the same time, and Iâm here to tell you that you donât have to worry about that. What happened, happened, and itâs my job to pick up the pieces because itâs my fault. You donât need to meddle.â Youâre breathing hard as you finish, finally settling back in your seat.Â
Heâs already pulling up to your building, heat still penetrating the silence. You unbuckle your seatbelt, mumbling a thanks for the ride.Â
âSeokâs staying at Cheolâs tonight,â he calls out as you shuffle out the door. âRemember to lock the door.âÂ
You stand sheepishly holding the open door as you nod quietly. âIâll see you tomorrow for the shoot.â
Middle school was harder than you thought.Â
Not that you expected it to be easy, but you remained hopeful nonetheless. Fifth grade came plowing for you with an unexpected vigor, which you were feeling especially as you gripped your red marked paper with a vice grip.Â
It was Mingyu who had found you on the kitchen island sniffling, waiting for your mother to come home and ask you for your dreaded test results.Â
You drop your head in shame (even more so) when he asks you the inevitable question of âwhatâs wrong?â Your voice comes out as a mumble. âI failed my first test.âÂ
He blinks as he stops in front of the fridge, opening it to emerge with a carton of chocolate milk and two monsters. He slides the carton over to you as he takes a seat on the other chair.Â
âWell, what did you get?â he asks as he pops his can open, ears studded black from the piercings heâd gotten done.Â
You mumble out the number in incoherence that has him hunching down to hear you.Â
âWhat?âÂ
âA fifteen!â you finally huff out in exasperation.Â
âHm. Better than me I think I got a two at some point. Donât worry about it, it's not the end of the world.â He says. âDâyou want me to turn that into a seventy five?âÂ
You look up confused. âHow?â
âYouâll see. Get me your test. And a red marker.âÂ
On that day, Mingyu aided you in your first con, pulling lines to turn the one into a seven right before your eyes.Â
âThere. Now donât let her look at it too hard or check your answers. And only give it to her if she asks for it.âÂ
He had left back to your brotherâs room with the spare can of monster, leaving you to stash your test into your bag and move to seat yourself in a more natural position. Youâd gotten away with it as your mother pats you on the back for your first attempt at a fifth grade paper, leaving you with a lesson to work harder, and a memory that stayed with you for years.Â
The following day is met with a pit of guilt sitting in your stomach before you could even recall the events of last night.Â
Thereâs little that you can do to prep as youâre supposed to change at the studio anyway, pushing the remnants of your makeup products into a pouch as a second thought. Your hair seemed fine, deciding youâd see to it if it needed changing when you got there.Â
You push your departure as far as you could, finding more things to do and more chores to finish before you were due to leave. It takes you a final look at the time before you finally decide to trudge to the door with your things. You cross paths with Seokmin whoâs only just coming home, looking worse for wear. He barely acknowledges you as he makes a beeline for his bedroom, disappearing.Â
Heâs probably fine.Â
By the time you get to the studio Mingyu is already in the middle of setting up, immersed in the switches behind giant studio lights. Itâs dark, save for the one studio light thats already on, casting a light on the white backdrop, a single stool sits at the front. Looking around, the place casts an eerie atmosphere, the unattended stations and dark back rooms casting a shiver down your spine despite the Afternoon light outside. Perhaps you were acclimated to the hustle and bustle in behind the scene videos of photoshoots, yet here it was just you and Mingyu.Â
He doesnât notice you come in right away, and youâre thankful for the opportunity to recast your words in your head, waiting to be uttered as soon as you say your hellos.Â
âOh, hey,â he says normally.Â
âHope Iâm not too late.â
âNo, youâre fine, Iâm nearly done setting up,â he says, as he switches the second studio light on, doubling the glow in the room.Â
âOh, okay.â Your voice comes out as an uncharacteristic whisper. âUh, listen, Mingyu, I just wanted to apologize about last night. You were only asking and I was being too harsh.â
He picks up his back from his bent position to look at you, hand coming to rub the back of his neck. âOh, no, donât say that, Itâs me who should be apologising. I shouldnât have pried when you said you didnât wanna talk about it. Iâm sorry, really.âÂ
You're opening your mouth to rebut, nails clashing onto each other as your fidgeting gets worse, but you decide to end it. âWeâre both sorry, letâs just end this here.âÂ
Both of you have slightly uncomfortable smiles on your faces as Mingyu continues to fidget with his cables and equipment. It went smoother than youâd thought, silently thanking him for keeping it from getting awkward â more awkward than necessary anyway.Â
âThese ones are gonna be basic studies, establishing the usual studio lights in the beginning before we move to the more experimental shots.â He drags his own stool forward to sit directly across from you in front of the plain white backdrop. âDid you bring another black top?â
âI did, do you want me to change?â
âNot yet.â He positions the camera higher, looking like heâs ready. âOkay, relax your body. Shoulders back, chin down. Okay, now a smile, really small, barely there.âÂ
He snaps his first photo and you nearly knock yourself backwards on the stool, lights going off at the shot damn near blinding you.Â
âYou good?â
âI thought the flash was just gonna be your camera.â You frown, coming round.Â
âNah, youâll get used to it. Okay, back in position.â
He takes a couple more pictures, urging you to make miniscule changes to your poses, whatever feels good. You find yourself loosening up, your posture aiding you instead of working against you. âTry putting your hands on the stool, yeah like that, lean forward. Chin up a little more.â
The directions continue from behind the camera as he continues to flash away, and you do your utmost to not let the lights disorient you too much. He lets you take a break when you make a comment about the pure thermal energy in the room, your face no doubt shiny and red from the lights. Youâre done after you take a couple more pictures after an outfit change, rendering you free to leave within the hour.Â
âI think youâre done,â he announces, stretching as he leaves his own stool. âIâll send you deets for tomorrow, weâll probably get a lot more done.â
âOh, cool.âÂ
Gathering your stuff doesnât take you as you go up to tell him youâre about to leave. You find him fiddling with cables, packing everything up before leaving himself. You make a split second decision, dropping your bag before announcing yourself.Â
âLet me help.â
âHuh? Oh no, itâs fine. I just need to shove them in storage.âÂ
âThatâs alright, Iâll help. What dâyou want me to do?âÂ
âUh, Maybe unplug all the ports, and um, turn the lights on too, I guess. Itâs gonna get dark if you donât.â
Cleaning up was easier when those god awful studio lights werenât overheating the entire hall, collecting cables and putting equipment back into their places. It was over before you knew it.Â
âIs your car back from the workshop?â Mingyu yells from inside one of the side rooms collecting his stuff.Â
âNot yet, Iâm getting it back on the 15th. Ordered a cab.âÂ
âYouâre going home from here, right?â He emerges from the room, arms in the middle of slipping into his jacket. âIâll drive you.â
âNo, itâs fine I have to meet Nayeon at uni andââ
âEven better, I was going there too. Come on, I just need to kill the lights.âÂ
Youâre out of saviours, evident as you slide into his car, yet again with no choice. Itâs meant to be a short drive, considering the studio is barely ten minutes away from where you need to be, yet it feels like an impromptu road trip with the way the roads seem to stretch.Â
Itâs significantly less awkward than last night, perhaps owed to him not being as inclined to make conversation, unlike last night.Â
By the time heâs pulling up, you already have your bag in hand, a thank you frozen on your tongue as you register who it is thatâs standing outside the library. You groan internally as you see Nayeon waiting for you, immersed in something on her phone. Praying she stays occupied, you rush your, âthanks, Iâll see you tomorrow,â as you hope she doesnât see you slip out of the familiar car.Â
She does notice. Looking up at the sound of yout door opening, she catches clear sight of you stepping out of the car, Mingyu in the driverâs seat. You can tell sheâs subdued her reaction, but the eyebrows gives her away as they shoot up at the sight. Trudging up to her is a nightmare and a half, dreading the questions sheâs going to ask as you hear Mingyu rev away.
âAre my eyes deceiving me?â she breathes out, eyes wide, mouth open in jest.Â
âQuit it, I have work to get done.â You choose to lead her straight into the library where you know she wonât be able to ask you any more probing questions.
That doesnât seem to sedate her though as she continues to whisper a million questions, watching you pull your stuff out.
âI had a shoot with him today, he offered to drop me off and I couldnât say no!â
âOh my gosh!â she exclaims a little too loud, owing a couple nasty surrounding looks her way, including yours. She continues quieter, pulling your laptop away from you so youâd pay more attention to her. âHowâd it go? Did you pose all sexy for him, did he look nervous?â
âI did not pose sexy, I posed normally, because I have a conscience,â you snap, yanking your laptop back from her grip.Â
Sheâs smiling like an idiot, unaffected by your annoyance. âIs he gonna drop you off after every shoot? Oh my god! Donât you dare get your car from the garage, give it to Seokmin, or, or, tell them to keep it!âÂ
âNayeon, shush!â Itâs your turn to whisper shout at her gradually increasing volume, pushing her to quit leaning over the desks.Â
âOkay, okay.â She sobers up.
âIâm supposed to be getting over him, why are you so happy about this? Indifference, remember? It was you who brought it up.â
âYes, but you canât tell me it doesnât look, I donât know, like, you know!â
Once sheâs a little less giddy, you finally tell her about last night â leaving out the bit where he droppped you home for the sake of the library and its inhabitants.Â
âI mean, I know we aplogised and everything, but I felt a little less⌠on fire around him. Other than those stupid studio lights, those were turning the place into a sauna. But I could meet his eyes without hyperventilating,â you explain, eyes downcast as you speak.Â
âI imagine his eyes were covered with that camera anyway, but progress, I guess,â Nayeon comments.
âMaybe I needed to get mad at him to feel better, I donât know. But it feels like Iâm making progress for the first time.âÂ
âI told you this would be good for you, give it a couple more weeks and itâll be like Mingyu never happened.âÂ
It takes a conscious attempt to not scoff. Like Mingyu never happened to your heart. Thatâs a heart you canât recognise.Â
The first time Seokmin had brought girls over was a day you couldnât forget, no matter how hard you tried.Â
You were padding down to the kitchen, still bleary eyed and pyjama clad from your nap, making a beeline for the fridge to get a glass of water. Your trip is cut short, however, when you realised the living room was not as empty as you expected. Itâs a crowd (to your eleven year old self, anyway) of people your brotherâs age. You catch a couple familiar faces, friends of your brother who visited often, Mingyu is part of the lumps on the couch with them.Â
What stumped you, however, were the girls that were seated in between, eyes equally trained on you as everyone else in the room.Â
âOh, whoâs this Seok?â one of the girls asked.Â
âMy little sister. Dâyou wanna say hi?â he asked you, neck craned to look at you.Â
âUh. Hi,â you whisper, gulping.Â
Thereâs a chorus of hiâs that came bounding at you. You could feel the embarrassment creep up your entire body, feeling conscious for the first time in your life. They were staring at you. They were smiling, but you hated it.Â
You werenât thinking as you turned around to sprint back upstairs, not missing the tinkle of laughs coming from the living room.Â
âOh, sheâs cute,â you had heard. That had you nearly starting to cry.Â
Youâd be lying if you said your little crush on Mingyu hadnât started blossoming for a while at that point. Being younger meant you were constantly fighting to be seen, even more so when youâd do anything for Mingyu to look at you. Hogging your brotherâs bean bag until you were kicked out, putting sparkly clips in your hair before you went to the kitchen, laughing especially loud when you knew he could hear.
And yet, despite everything, for the very first time, you hated that Mingyu was looking at you, watching you idle and awkward while he sat next to a bunch of prettier, older girls.Â
That night was of many firsts, including the first time you had ever cried over Mingyu.
Mingyu claimed this was the last shoot, that heâd be done after this final set of shots.Â
Youâre having a hard time though, because heâs decided his studio for the day was gonna be at the top of a mountain at the asscrack of dawn.Â
âWe have fifteen minutes,â he announces.Â
âTo live?â You heave, crouching on the gravel to give your body a break.Â
âTill sunrise,â he interjects, reversing to get to your crouched figure. You feel him grab hold of the straps of your bag, swinging it over his own shoulder. âCome on, just a little more.â
âYouâve been saying that for an hour.â You groan, picking yourself up off the path to resume your trudging. Mingyu stays next to you this time.Â
âDid you pack your entire house in here, the fuck is this so heavy for,â he grunts.Â
âYou're the one asking for a bajillion outfit changes, Iâm just doing what you asked.âÂ
âOne change of clothes and a compact doesnât weigh this much, are you disposing a body up here?âÂ
âMight be yours if I don't see that damn railing in a minute.âÂ
âI think you're hungry,â he huffs out.Â
âI think I need to never agree to do this again.âÂ
âSalavation!â he yelps as he sees a vending machine in the distance, quite literally glowing (with its fluorescent lights).Â
âI donât need a water bottle, Mingyu, I need to lie down.â Your voice grows more gruff by the minute, legs nearly giving away.Â
âNo, the vending machine meansâŚâ He bounds up the last couple leaps to the glowing box with a burst of motivation. The slope turns flat at the horizon. âWeâre here.âÂ
Nearly falling to your knees at the sight of the long awaited arrival point, you drop to a nearby bench and lay flat on the stiff wood.Â
âHow long till I need to look presentable? Because if itâs anything under thirty minutes, Iâm tapping out.â You declare.Â
âI can give you five minutes, take it or leave it.â He barely sits down as he speaks while already unzipping his camera bag. The thought of lifting your arms is excruciating, so you rest your tongue and bite back a whine.Â
By the time you do find it within yourself to swing your legs back over the bench, the sky is shifting to a smoky navy, urging you to hurry up as you dry your sweat. Youâre cringing as you press powder on your unclean face, but power through the final touches as you stretch while standing up straight. Â
The first rays of sunlight are just coming through as Mingyu calibrates his lenses, trying to figure out the best shots in the limited time frame you have. You listen to him as he directs you where he wants you, contorting your face into something akin to faux serene. Itâs near impossible when the frown has molded itself into your face after what youâve put your body through today.Â
âThink happy thoughts.â Mingyu calls out from behind his camera.Â
âOh, Iâm thinking real happy thoughts. Like the ice cold shower Iâm about to take when I get home. My clean bed thatâs gonna be nice to me when I lay in it. The leftover pasta in the fridge. My moonpies.â
He has to bring his face away from the camera to throw his head back in a breathy laugh, smile as wide as it could go. It does things to you, but you ignore it.Â
The summit isnât entirely empty, noting a few people leaning against the railings, rendering it mostly quiet. All the more jarring becomes Mingyuâs phone as it blares into the silence, causing the both of you to jump at the sudden sound.Â
He checks the caller ID only to silence it and slip it back into his pocket.Â
You donât get to ask who it was calling him so early in the morning, but get your answer when he immediately announces heâs done with his shots. The sun is higher up at this point, casting a more even orange glow across all the eye could see.Â
You suppose heâs in a hurry to get home, seeing as he has someone waiting on him. âShould we leave then?âÂ
He swings the camera strap around his neck, forearms on the railing as he admires the view. âGive it a couple more minutes, I need to mentally prepare myself for the next hour.âÂ
Itâs hard for you to deny that, so you let yourself place your head into your crossed arms over the railing, staring into the glow. Itâs silent for a while as the rays hit your face, warming you more than youâd like. You donât make any effort to move though, deciding to appreciate the view while it was here, doubting youâd ever make the trek up here again. Not willingly, at least.Â
Thereâs a camera shutter that goes off next to you and you find Mingyu fidgeting with his camera as he tries to begin packing it up. You would help, but youâve found yourself refraining from touching anything when it comes to his actual camera setup, opting to watch as he disassembles his lenses and pushes buttons to power off.Â
By the time you're trudging down the path youâd come up from, itâs bright and sunny, rendering it warmer than before. Going down, however, is proving easier as you appreciate the reduced strain in your calves, letting the recent conversation take you to a smoother route.Â
âWhen dâyou think your gonna be done editing?â You ask at some point, the thought occurring to you that youâd only seen a couple pictures that heâd taken so far, oweing to his disapproval showing you all the raws before editing.Â
âKinda have to get them edited and annotated by the due date, so probably by the end of the month.âÂ
âDâyou think I could get the ones you edit?âÂ
âWhy? Dâyou wanna kickstart a portfolio?â he muses.
âI think itâs normal to ask for my pictures you took of me,â you grunt.
He laughs it off. âYeah, yeah, Iâll send them over.âÂ
Mingyu doesnât drop you off home this time, both of you slipping into your own cars at the base of the hiking trail, bidding your goodbyes. Youâd gotten an earful from Nayeon for getting your car back from the garage so quickly, and while sitting in a car with him wasnât so bad anymore, you choose to retain that distance regardless. This was work, Youâre doing this because you have to, and the stupid extra credit that roped you into this in the first place.
Alas, as you start your engine, eyes cast towards Mingyuâs number plate right up front, you canât help but feelâŚsad⌠remembering this was your last shoot. As emotionally vexing the experience was, you had grown to look forward to his discreet location pins and outfit plans, growing more comfortable with him by the meeting.Â
It almost felt like you and Mingyu were friends.Â
Your brotherâs graduation was an ordeal to say the least. Your parents flying in was a plus, getting to see them at least once for the summer, even if it was just for the day.Â
The night is wrapped up fairly quickly, a big dinner with yours and Mingyuâs family to congratulate the freed graduates from their academic shackles. It dials back when Mingyu announces heâs gonna take a summer course for now to keep himself busy, wanting to wait a little before job hunting. Seokmin seems to express the same, wanting some time off for himself before entering the corporate world.
Itâs when you get home and your brother is sending you all the pictures of today that you note one that stands out. It was of you and Mingyu, an inevitable one as your parents took turns to make sure everybody got solo shots with everyone.
Youâd applaud the enthusiasm, but it was particularly unfortunate for you when the camera was thrust into your hands as Mingyu and Jia posed for nearly fifty pictures. You wouldnât mind usually, but it just felt like a little too much in the moment.
Despite everything, you find yourself clicking on the Save button on the picture where youâre smiling a little too wide right next to him, for the sake of yourself.
Summer break rolls around with no more hiccups, if youâd count finals as anything other than strenuous. You were happy, with a new job to keep you company for the next three months as you lament not being able to go home.Â
Getting the job at the bookstore was easy, your shifts were reasonable and it didnât pay half bad. You wouldâve guessed they were desperate for a hire, but you appreciate the activity regardless. Itâs not really hard work, you find out quickly. Manning the desk, shelving deposits and restocking supplies. Monotonous tasks yet ones that you find yourself slipping into quite easily.
After the last shoot at the mountain, it was basically radio silence from Mingyu. Not being able to catch him the rare chance he stopped by the house, both of you swamped with the end of semester throw up. You doubt heâd noticed, and you despair at the fact that you did, even if it was just a little.Â
âOh, great, youâre here!â The owner greets you as you walk into the store, all smiles. She was a sweet lady, nicer than any other boss youâd ever had. âWas just waiting for you so I could leave, my daughter has a play sheâs putting on today!âÂ
âOh, sorry to keep you!â You rush to set your bag down as she picks up her own things, coming around from the table to take her leave. âHope the recital goes well, tell her I said good luck.â
âWill do.â She smiles before adding, âOh and, somebody called an hour ago asking about our book bundles, he said heâd come in to check but he hasnât yet. Thought Iâd let you know in case he asks about the phone call.â
âGot it,â you confirm, waving as she walks out the door, âIâll see you tomorrow!âÂ
Breathing out a sigh, you find yourself relatively free this afternoon, a slow weekday as you pick your current read out of your bag to get comfortable for the long shift. Youâre nearly through the halfway point when you hear the first jingle of the day, the bells attached to the door making their familiar chime
âGood afternoon!â You look up to greet the customer, dog earring your book before standing up from your seat.
The person whoâd walked in wasnât just any customer, you soon realise as you recognise the familiar shag of hair. Mingyu was here.Â
âOh.â You canât help but let it out when you register him, his own eyebrows shooting up at the sight of you behind the counter. Your next greeting comes out a little dumbly. âHi.â
âHey. Whatâre you doing here?â he asks, eyebrows furrowed as he takes you in.Â
âUm,â you glance at your obvious name tag. âI work here.âÂ
âOh, right, Seok mentioned you started working at a bookstore.â He throws his head back at the memory. âHey, was it you over the phone earlier today? Didnât sound like it.â
âOh no, that was my boss, my shift started like an hour ago.â You confirm.Â
âAh, I see.âÂ
The silence is awkward for about five seconds before you jump into action. âYou asked about a bundle over the phone?âÂ
âRight, um,â he pauses to fish his phone out his pocket, scrolling for something. âItâs Jiaâs birthday coming up, and thereâs this book series sheâs been wanting. Here.â
You need to remind yourself to pat yourself on the back for not shaking as you received his phone, mind remaining in the moment. âOh yeah, we have those. Let me grab âem for you.âÂ
He follows you through the columns of shelves as you navigate to find what he was looking for, stopping in front of the shelves. âThereâs three of these, I can put them in a sleeve for you. Probably put a bow on it too if you want.âÂ
âOkay, perfect. Do you guys have LPâs too?â he asks.
âUh, yeah. Hold on, let me put these up front.âÂ
You lead him to the back of the store. âThe selectionâs pretty small, the first shipment only came in like a month ago. Iâm not sure if youâll find what you want here.âÂ
âSheâs been talking about getting more LPâs after she got a new record player. Hasnât mentioned anything she wants though,â he voices, thumbing through the selection.Â
âWhat does she listen to normally?â You ask before quickly adding, âSo I can, maybe, help pick something sheâd like.â
âUh, older stuff? I shouldâve snooped before coming, fuck.â He mumbles, thinking hard. âShe barely plays it when Iâm around but most of her LPâs are like Frank Sinatra andâŚDuran Duran was it?â Â
âHmâŚâ You hum as you flick through the dated section of the stockpile, âHowâs this?â
Heâs taking a look at the record youâve handed him, scanning the tracklists on the back. âIâll get this, I guess. I can always bring her around to get more that she likes.âÂ
âDâyou want a bow on this?â You ask, referring to the books youâre putting into the set sleeve, âYou can pick your colour.â
Heâs quick to pick the lilac ribbon, watching you as you tape it prettily on the box. Youâre trying to curl the ribbon at the ends when he tries to make conversation.Â
âWhen does your shift end?âÂ
If the man wasnât quite literally buying a birthday present for his girlfriend (or if you had any memory of your own birthday), youâd think he was trying to hit on you. But heâs not. You know that.Â
âTen-ish. Closingâs on me so I could technically leave an hour early and no one would know.â You snort.
âEveryday?â he asks incredulously.Â
âMinus weekends, the family takes care of that. They just need someone for afternoons and evenings on the weekdays. Itâs not like Iâm taking summer classes or anything, and itâs easy work.âÂ
âWell, youâll be pleased to find out youâll most likely be available on the 27th of August, then.â He sing songs as he fishes his phone out to pay, a cheeky air in his expression.
You blink at him in confusion, waiting for him to explain. âWas I supposed to get that?â
He pushes his shoulders back, content expression on his face as he continues. âThereâs a cultural art exhibition in two months, and I, have just found out Iâve been shortlisted for a spot.âÂ
âA spot? Like to display your photos?!â You drop the card machine with a thud.
âYour photos. Prof liked the project so much she submitted some of âem as entries. It was super short notice, but they liked them, I guess.â His grin is wide, one that you find impossible to not reciprocate. âI just need you to sign a consent form and Iâll be all set to start prepping.âÂ
âThatâs insane, Mingyu, congratulations!â You exclaim, genuinely excited. âAre you gonna be using the same pictures?â
âYup, I just need to fix the editing with my prof before they go up. Youâre the first to find out, I just got out of the meeting.âÂ
Thereâs a mix of hesitation before you utter your next proposal, a split second of bewilderment at what you were about to suggest. âCome over tonight, we can celebrate with Seok. Bring Jia along too, we can celebrate an early birthday.âÂ
âIâll see, she might be taking a bus home tonight for the weekend, might have to bother you by myself.â
The ache in your cheeks didnât stop until well after Mingyu had left with his cargo, the elated feeling remaining for even longer after the fact. There was a point where it took you convincing to rid yourself of another intrusive, uneasy feeling, like you were taking a step back by being happy at his announcement.Â
It was, however, safe to call Mingyu a friend. Safe to be happy for him. Safe to have your heart swell at his achievement, having watched him work hard for it.
It was safe to feel.
This was horrible.Â
Truly.Â
You were trying to ignore it, the strange thumping noises coming from under your car, like it would go away if you pretended to not hear. There was a sliver of hope for you, barely five minutes away from home that youâd make it before your tire decided it had enough of trying to grab your attention.Â
But then it started screeching, and you had to stop before you caused a road fire.
âTire? Didnât you get them changed like last month?â Seokmin asks over the phone.
âDidnât know new tires were immune to industrial blades, too. Are you gonna tell me I got ripped off?âÂ
âMingyu has a scissor jack, Iâll tell him to come to you.â
âWait! You have a scissor jack, too! Why canât you come?â You sputter at the sound, glancing at the 21:42 on the dial.Â
âHe has my scissor jack, heâll change it for you.â He grits back. âBesides, Iâm not letting this face pack go to waste I just put it on.âÂ
âSeok!âÂ
âStay in the car, lock the doors till he gets there.â He grounds.
âSeokmin!âÂ
Beep.Â
The bastard hung up.Â
âUgh!â you break from a tightened jaw, slamming the car door shut with passion as you huff into your seat, waiting for Mingyu.Â
Was Mingyu busy at 10:30 PM on a weekday? He was, actually.
Heâd scrambled to finish up the last of his meeting with his professor, wrapped up in planning for the exhibition despite the two month time frame heâd been given. Exhibitions were a lot of paperwork, as he was finding out as he sweet talks Jia over the phone, promising to be with her within the next five minutes. Well, ten maybe, he has to grab butter from the store.
She sits on the kitchen counter as Mingyu makes her favourite. A strenuous task, but heâs willing to go through the double frying to make up for the time heâs lost. Itâs not until heâs doing the post dinner dishes while Jiaâs picking a movie in the living room that heâs met with another dilemma to handle.Â
Heâs deflating as he stands, phone to ear as he listens to Seokmin about your situation. Glancing at the near 10:30 PM hand on the clock, he finds it difficult to refuse, especially when heâs told youâre alone and stranded on a highway. He thinks to Jia in the living room as he tells Seokmin heâs leaving the house to get to you.
Heâd only be gone for barely 20 minutes. Heâs changed plenty of tires, this should be quick and easy.Â
Slipping into the living room is easy, wrapping his arms around Jia from behind is even easier. Itâs when he has to open his mouth that he begins to falter. Twenty minutes, he reminds himself.
âI have two Iâve heard are really good, you can pick which one we watch first,â she voices as she fluffs the pillows on the couch, ready to tuck in for the rest of the night.Â
âBabe?âÂ
She spins around in his arms, coming up to fluff his flat hair too. âHm?âÂ
âSeok just calledâŚâ
Her face falls as he talks despite his best attempts to assure her he wonât be long.Â
âTwenty minutes?â she parrots, wanting his word.Â
âFifteen.âÂ
Whether Mingyu would keep his word is something heâd find out, but you had kept your word to Seokmin, staying in the car, doors locked till you saw Mingyuâs car pull up behind you in the rearview. The wretched scissor jack thatâs caused all of this sits in his own boot as he yanks it out to bring it over to your car, where you stand arms crossed, face dejected.Â
âWere you waiting long?â He asks as he immediately crouches to fit the jack where he wants it.Â
âNo, not really,â you reply. âIâm sorry you had to come all the way out here, if only Seok remembered to take the stupid scissor jackââ
âNo, no, itâs okay. I wasnât doing anything.â Lies. But you already sounded apologetic and he didnât wanna hear you apologize any further. Â
âNo, itâs not okay. The idiotâs relaxing with a stupid face mask on while you have to come out here and change a fucking tire, God, you have class tomorrow too, donât you?âÂ
âNot until the afternoon, Iâm in the clear.â He springs up from his crouched position, pulling the jack with him. âOpen the boot.âÂ
Placing the scissor jack in your boot, he continues, a little breathless. âThere, Iâll tell Seokmin I left it in your car. Or, you could do that.âÂ
âThanks, Mingyu. Really.âÂ
He does nothing but flash a smile, doing his best to convince you you werenât an inconvenience before having to see your apologetic face again. âAlright, I wanna see you drive off before I leave, go on.âÂ
By the time Mingyuâs slamming the door of the house shut, itâs eighteen minutes on the dot. Jia doesnât say much, excited to have him back in her arms.Â
âWait!â he suddenly yelps, once heâs tucked in with her.Â
âWhat now?â she groans.Â
Mingyuâs bounding back to his bedroom, emerging a few moments later with a dark paper bag. He goes back to sit next to her on the couch, sliding the bag and its contents towards her.
âHere. Weâre not gonna be together for your birthday, might as well give you your present the night before you leave.â His eyes are glinting, hopeful.
Jia expresses her thank youâs commenting on the ribbon and his LP choice, grinning widely.
Your name comes tumbling out of Mingyuâs mouth before he can stop himself. âShe helped me pick it out!âÂ
âYouâŚtook her with you?â She asks after a moment.
âShe worked at the store! I didnât know till I went there either.â Mingyuâs voice grows increasingly enthusiastic, seemingly unaware that his girlfriend was growing slightly irritated. âIâll take you there when you get back, the selectionâs small but sheâll probably help you pick out something youâd like. I only had to give her like two names before she figured it out.â
âOh, thatâs nice,â she comments, tight smile on her lips as she collects the book sleeve and the LP, placing them back into the bag and leaving them on the floor next to her.
Mingyu is blissfully unaware of the fuel heâs added to growing embers, munching away on his popcorn, eyes trained on the TV and its stimulating colours.Â
âI was talking to Jihyo the other day, super random but it came up while we were talking about you,â Jia starts experimentally.Â
âHuh?â He has her attention. And when she mentions your name, the part of him thatâs always wondered when sheâd bring it up comes out of dormancy.Â
âShe said sheâŚI donât know, she said she liked you at some point, Like a lot, and for a while.â Jia sounds unsure, like she didnât know if it was a good idea to bring you up.Â
Mingyu sighs as he rears himself for the inevitable conversation. âItâsâwell, it wasâjust puppy love. I was around all the time and I guess she latched, I donât know.â
Jia pauses, eyes remanging trained on the movie. âDoes it make you uncomfy? That she liked you? Maybe she still does.âÂ
âIt doesnât matter, does it? Iâm around Seok which means Iâm sometimes around her by default. Canât help it. I mean, the photography thing kinda just happened but, I donât really care. And she seems over it.âÂ
Mingyu is rambling. He can feel it. Which is why he tries to end the conversation right there, tone nonchalant as he hopes the topic breezes past.Â
It doesnât.Â
âYou seemed pretty adamant in leaving, though.â
âHuh?â
âWhen she called just now.â
âSeok called, I had his scissor jack!â
âWhy couldnât he have grabbed it for you and helped his sister himself? He has a car too.â Jiaâs paused the movie at this point, moving away from his arm she was leaning on, shifting to look at him fully.Â
âIt wouldâve taken him forever, she was alone in the middle of a highway at nearly eleven, you wanted me to leave her there?â Mingyu finds the conversation ridiculous, and it shows in the irritation that rises in his own voice.Â
âMingyu, you canât be upset with me right now,â she breathes out exasperated.Â
âIâm not? I get that youâre upset, I havenât been around as much but you also know what this exhibition means to me. I need to put everything I have into this and itâs only for a couple monthsââ
âMingyu, itâs not just the exhibition!âÂ
âJia, I canât know if you donât tell me whatâs really bothering you, talk to me.â Mingyuâs begging at this point, wondering how itâs come to this in the first place.Â
âYou canât expect me to be okay with you going around wherever, whenever, when I know what kind of lifestyle youâve come out of not even six months ago!âÂ
Mingyu had come a long way from his galvanizing tendencies, doing absolutely everything he could to convince Jia he was serious about her. Unfortunately, this was not the first time his past had been brought up; in an argument or in a light hearted setting, and he wasnât particularly fond of it.Â
âAre we in six months ago? Are you saying Iâve done nothing substantial for you to think Iâm still fucking around? Either give me an instance or figure out what the real issue is!âÂ
Thereâs a plaster of suffocation in the room, neither soul speaking a word. Until Jia finally speaks. âI wanna go home.â
It didnât matter to Mingyu if she was expecting him to grovel, to ask her to stay and talk about this further. It was clear she wasnât about to talk about anything pertinent at all, and definitely not tonight. He was tired, and frankly wanted to be alone right now.
âFine.âÂ
Silence penetrates all of his air for the entire car ride up until heâs entering his apartment for the third time that day. Not bothering to clean up the living room, he thinks he does himself a service so as to not be reminded of the past couple hours. Heâs casting the place in complete darkness before moving to his room. Might as well get some work done.Â
Thereâs a conscious effort to not start slamming things, he succeeds mostly, his graphic tablet receiving the short end of the stick. Turning on his monitor, heâs met with his ongoing project still brought up on the screen.
Itâs a picture of you. One he took in a greenhouse off the outskirts of the city, something you complained about extensively as the heat ruined both your mood and your hair. You were smiling regardless; a wide, happy smile as you looked into the camera, petuniaâs and dahliaâs framing an illusion around your figure.
Mingyu feels the tension in his muscles begin to relax, his breathing evening out after what felt like hours. He becomes almost excited to pick up his stylus and work on the photo, the set up allowing him to dive right in. There was barely any work left, moving on as he finishes the photo and saves it.Â
It isnât until he happens to click on the the last folder, the one where you both caught the sunrise after a strenuous hike. He canât help but break into a hint of a smile at the memory of your broken figure at the pathway, cursing him for bringing you here so early in the morning. The pictures had come out good, especially when Mingyu opens a particular photo at the bottom of the folder, an extra from his initial round of editing for his actual project.Â
Itâs of you (of course) with your chin tucked into your arms as you gaze at the scene from up above, beyond the railing. The sun is up higher at that point, but the cast remains as the top half of your face that wasnât tucked in your arms is lit in an orange glow, eyes glistening like stars during the day, wide and beautiful.Â
Mingyu remembers the shot. It was an accident.
In an attempt to fiddle with the settings to turn off the camera, he ended up snapping a picture instead. The distinct click was noticed, never bothering to check what came out of it when he stuffed his camera back into his bag, nor when he sifted through his SD card.Â
It was like he was seeing the picture in a new light, and the potential it had to become something worth ogling at. He wonders what had come over him when he had placed the photo as a secondary option without another thought, lamenting at what couldâve been his actual final piece.Â
He stares and stares, attempting to draw maps of color rendering in his mind, yet all that comes up is his eyes zeroing in on your own. How they glisten. How they sparkle.
Part 2
#mingyu#mingyu fluff#mingyu smut#mingyu fic#mingyu imagines#mingyu scenarios#mingyu angst#seventeen#seventeen fluff#seventeen smut#seventeen angst#seventeen x reader#seventeen scenarios#seventeen fic#seventeen imagines#svt#svt fluff#svt angst#svt smut
6K notes
¡
View notes
Text
cw: this is so goofy. selfship-coded. izuku has a subtle breeding kink (i wrote this what's new). pregnancy mention. condom use. suggestive, minors dni.
you sit warily on the toilet seat, your fiancĂŠ right outside the door, and your foot tap tap taps as you wait for the little piece of plastic in your hand to decide your future.
ironically, you don't have the energy for trepidation anymore because you feel like by now you're at this literally every couple of days.
but baby it doesn't feel good?
but don't you want me to feel all of me?
i promise i'll pull out better this time.
just the tip is fine, right?
izuku's outside the bathroom door, giving you privacy as though he wasn't nose deep between your legs just last night, slobbering all over you like a starving puppy presented with a wet meal. for a moment it occurs to you that if you really are pregnant, even if you can clearly handle it financially and emotionally, you'll shove that stick so far up his ass that-
your timer goes off and it's negative.
you sigh.
izuku bursts in at the sound of your voice, immediately uttering a supportive "is everything okay baby?" the shine to his emerald eyes makes you wonder if he actually, deep down, does want you pregnant.
"perfect. no baby."
he grins and kisses your forehead as you adjust your panties up and stand to wash your hands. squishing your cheeks as he has trouble getting his hands off of you, he promises that he'll actually invest in some condoms.
you don't believe him, but you consider making that appointment to your ob-gyn to get an intrauterine device you've been thinking about sooner rather than later.
---
another night comes and he's looked at you like that and he continues to be built like that and you have no choice but to let him do whatever he wants with you, even if it is to drag you not really kicking and not really screaming from your work, going from holding you around your midsection to lifting you up effortlessly so that your crotch is pressed against his face. he sniffs you like an entire dog and you're both terribly embarrassed and terribly aroused by his sheer want for you. izuku is already pressing kisses to your mound through your yoga pants as he carries you to the bed.
"izuku, i still have shit to do!" you argue, but you're holding on tight to his head to keep your balance, as if he would ever let you fall.
"you've worked hard enough," he says, muffled by your legs around his face. "i'm asking politely. may i please have some pussy?"
the fact that he's asking this, just as you land on the bed with a practical bounce is almost offensive. you sit up.
"are you even asking?"
he leans in, grinning as he gets on all fours to descend upon you.
"i mean yeah, of course," he replies, knowing full well that you won't say no as he pulls off his shirt. you shake your head, but your shirt goes over your head as well. he catches your lips in a kiss first, and you sink into the bed under his weight as he practically smothers you in kisses. wet, sloppy, silly, you laugh against each other, groping each other with your hands, and then it occurs to you both at the same time.
condoms.
you pull away, his teeth still grazing at your lower lip.
"izuku, do you have any?"
he blinks for a moment, sitting back on his heels. then his eyes widen.
"yes!"
izuku sounds a little too excited just for condoms, and your eyes narrow, but he practically leaps off the bed and is burrowing through his workbag for something, and you squint, expecting a box.
what he comes up with dries you up so fast you'll need iv fluids.
his grin is wide as he presents to you, proudly, a string of pristine looking condoms, all printed with all might's million watt smile right on the packaging.
"see, i didn't forget!"
a moment of silence passes as you beg the heavens above that your adonis of a partner is not fucking serious about fucking you sideways with his mentor's brand of contraceptive rubbers.
"izuku."
"what?"
"..."
you walk out of the room, immediately, so irate you can't speak.
"WHAT?!" he asks, following you out immediately. "come on!"
there's no way you are coming or cumming anywhere in the next hour. not like this.
you find your seat back at your desk and crack open your hardback textbook as hard as you can, doing your best to ignore the whine his voice has taken. he can actually die of blue balls for all you care.
"come on, it's not that bad!"
you snap your head at him and give him a look, and he immediately recants.
"okay, i'll go out right now and get normal condoms, i promise."
you lick the tip of your index finger and turn the page of your book.
"please, my dick is literally so hard right now, don't you care if i die?"
"perish. let me see," you reply, without turning your head.
"wow!" you can't' help but stifle a laugh at his disbelief. you hear him shift upwards and turn, not even realizing he had been kneeling.
as he stands, you do get a look at his... impressive member. maybe he could die like this, the way that thing is rock hard and waiting desperately for you.
you blink, look at your book, then look back at him. he's looking at you with the puppy dog eyes, and he still looks the way he does and he's still built the way he is, and...
...
moments later, you're folded into a jackknife because your pro hero fiancĂŠ somehow always gets his way, but at least, mercifully, his mentor's condom isn't wrapped all over what's pumping in and out of you.
right before your eyes roll back in your head, you can still see all might's smile, and maybe you should have just stuck with the damn pregnancy tests after all.
#izuku x reader#izuku midoriya x reader#izuku smut#cw pregnancy#cw breeding#mimi's notes#mimidoriya#daydreams: bnha
3K notes
¡
View notes
Note
imagine red hood and the reader being friends. They helped patch him up one day and now he won't leave then alone.
Then jason todd meets reader somewhere and they bump into each other quite often.
Now imagine reader gushing to hood about how cute this guy is and how bad they want to kiss him/fuck him/whatever.
I know hood's face would be matching his helmet and he resolved to ask them out the next time they met in his civilian form.
Jason Todd x Reader
Pt. 2
"Are you for fucking real?" You grumbled, half asleep yet a bat in your hands, ready to swing at the predator who knocked all the trinkets of your living roon window sill.
Bright white eyes shone back at you, the giant figure just standing there, though his hand was clutching his side.
"Man, I told you not to come back here," you scoffed, throwing the bat to the ground and getting your first aid.
"I got sliced." The modulated voice replied nonchalantly, heading for your couch.
"Yeah, yeah, yeah, I see it." I muttered, kneeling in front of him, inspecting the wound. "It's not that bad, Red. Should have you fixed up in a couple of minutes.."
"There we are," you sighed, finishing the bandages, admiring your handiwork. "Do you not know how to do this shit yourself or..." You asked, packing away the supplies.
"I like the way you do it." He muttered, patting the bandages, a dumb smile across his face, behind his helmet.
"You staying the night, or do you have to head out again?"
"Go out."
"Don't get yourself hurt again. Okay?" You said, your expression softening as you stood back in front of Red Hood, cradling his helmet in your hands.
He just grunted, getting up and placing his hand on your head in silent assurance that he'll be fine.
The next afternoon, walking around the city as you stumbled across a quaint, charming book shop cafe that you haven't noticed before.
The atmosphere was comfortable when you entered as you walked around the narrow aisle of bookshelves. When you spotted a book that you've been meaning to read for a while at the top shelf, you reached up to grab it, when another hand beat you to it.
You turned to scowl at the person who took your book when you were obviously there first, when you were met eye to eye with a gorgeous stranger. His face was sharp, with jagged scars decorating his face. His nose was big and slightly crooked. His lips were chapped. His eyes were a beautiful mix of blue and green.
Your brain short-circuited, forgetting that you were going to scold the man for taking the book, but isntead, you stood there, looking like a fool as you stared at the man.
But when you realised how creepy you looked, your fight or flight responded with flight, saying absolutely nothing as you tried to walk away, mentally slapping yourself for the awkward interaction.
"You like Austen?" The gruff voice said. A familiar voice, but you couldn't put your finger on it. You turned back to the stranger.
"Uhm.. I guess.. I'm not much of a book person, but I've wanted to read 'Emma' for a while now," you sheepishly said.
He nodded. "It's good." He said, handing you the book.
You stared at it. "Are you not gonna.."
"I've read it a bunch of times." He said, taking your wrist and putting the book in your hand. "You take it."
"Oh.. thanks.." You muttered.
"Jason." He said, extending out his hand as you shook it back, giving your name in return. Jason held back from an accidental slip of an 'I know.'
"Sorry for taking it off, you," he said. "I was just a little too eager to see the book. Can I get you some coffee while we're still here?"
Your eyes widened. "Oh! You don't have to real-"
He took your wrist, taking you to the coffee shop. Honestly, you were beginning to think this guy was a serial killer from how eager he was. But it was free coffee that you weren't willing to turn down.
"I met this guy today at a book and cafe shop I ran into," you said as you focused on wrapping bandages around Red Hood's bicep. This information made his ears perk up, remembering the little meet-up the two of you had.
"Oh yeah? Gonna replace me?" He said.
You scoffed. "No. But he was pretty hot," you said nonchalantly. "He had scars all over his face. And a great nose..." You muttered as Red Hood tilted his head.
"His nose?"
You looked up at him, a suggestive glimmer in your eyes. Red Hood shifted on your couch, suddenly feeling hot and uncomfortable.
He cleared his throat. "Is the nose the first thing you notice in a guy?"
"Not usually. His was just very distinct. I might go again tomorrow to see if he'd show up again."
And he did. He was already there the second you stepped in. And once he saw you, he was already walking up to you, seemingly determined to get to know you.
"Oh my god, Red!" You squealed that night. "He's actually so fine, you don't understand!"
Usually, Red Hood stops by because, according to him, he 'likes the way you patch him up'. But he just dropped by, unharmed because he felt like it. Also, he knew you'd talk about this Jason guy and wanted to hear what you think of him.
"His thighs- ugh!! I need my head in between them now!"
"My thighs not enough for you, sweetheart?" He muttered.
You rolled your eyes. "If I knew what you looked like, then maybe. Anyway, don't interrupt me. His hands?? I need to suck on his fingers, oh my god."
Red Hood shifted in his seat, his pants feeling tighter than usual.
But you continued. "His lips were pretty chapped. Don't ask me why I was looking at his lips, but man! I actually need him to shove his tongue down my throat. I need him to put me in a chokehold in between his biceps, I need to suck on his pecs. I can go on about the absolute VILE thoughts of what I'd let him do to me-"
Red Hood stood up. "And I don't wanna be here to hear them." He said, almost stuttering. "I'll come back tomorrow night."
You rolled your eyes. "Yeah, I'd expect it."
When Jason got back to his safe house, running an extremely cold shower while his hand was tight around his cock, he tried getting those filthy images that you described out of his mind.
Jason was a slow pace man, so as much as he was on the verge of tossing his helmet off, giving you the fantasy of stuffing your mouth with his tongue, he wanted to do the least and ask you on a date first.
SORRY ANON I wasn't sure how to conjure up the whole date thing. I might make a part 2 if interested!!
#mickeysideas#jason todd#jason todd x reader#red hood#red hood x reader#jason todd is my life#titans jason todd#i love jason todd#dc titans#jason todd titans#jason todd headcanon#jason todd x reader smut#jason todd x y/n#jason todd x you#jason todd ff#jason todd fanfic#jason todd fanfiction#jason todd fic#jason todd fluff#red hood x you#red hood x y/n#red hood fanfic#red hood fluff#red hood fic#red hood fanfiction#red hood smut#jason todd x gn!reader#jason todd x gender neutral reader#red hood x gn!reader#red hood x gender neutral reader
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
â love language, j. burrow. â  â â â Â
â â ââ ââ summary: joe burrow was made to be a husband. your honeymoon is proof enough that loving you is his love language.
â â ââ ââ author's note: inspired by a couple of anon requests! another addition to the joe can't shut up when he's in love agenda. no real plot, no real substance. took me a solid month to write this so i tried to incorporate as many reqs as i could <3
â â ââ ââ warnings: smut, please do not interact with my work if you are under 18. language, sexual content, excessive usage of husband and wife/mr. and mrs., breeding kink, reader mentions ovulating, massage, cheesy dialogue, oral sex (fem receiving), mention of butt stuff but no actual butt stuff, backshots!!, mirror sex, praise kink if you squint.
â â ââ ââ pairing: joe burrow x wife!reader.
â â ââ ââ word count: 8k.
In the bustling backroom of the grand ballroom, you stood tall and radiant, your brown eyes sparkling with a blend of excitement and exhaustion. The scent of your bouquet of baby breaths filled the small space, mingling with the faint aroma of Joe's cologne. You took a deep breath, feeling the weight of the wedding gown you had spent months choosing.
Joe, dressed sharply in his tuxedo, leaned against the wall with his arms folded, his blue eyes dancing with amusement as he watched you fidget with your dress. "You look like you're about to jump out of your skin," he said, a smirk playing at the corners of his mouth.
You rolled your eyes, a laugh bubbling up from your chest. "You have no idea," you replied, your voice filled with energy. "I've been holding it together for hours, and now all I want to do is kick off these heels and dance like a lunatic."
Joe chuckled, his sarcasm giving way to affection as he stepped closer to you. He reached out and took your hand, his thumb brushing over your knuckles in a gentle caress. "Well, Mrs. Burrow," he began, his voice low and teasing, "once we make our grand entrance, the dance floor is all yours."
Your eyes lit up at the sound of your new title, a grin spreading across your face. "And what will Mr. Burrow be doing?" you asked, raising an eyebrow playfully.
Joe shrugged, his own smile growing. "Probably tripping over my own two feet. You know I'm more of a 'sway and hope nobody notices' kind of dancer."
"Not tonight, Joey." You said with a mischievous glint in your eye. "Tonight, you're dancing with me like you mean it."
Joe feigned a dramatic sigh, but the joy in his eyes was unmistakable. "Fine," he drew out the vowels, rolling his eyes playfully despite the unmistakable grin that was spreading across his face. "But only if you promise not to laugh when I get a few drinks in me."
Your laugh was music to Joe's ears, and he felt his own tension start to unwind. "Deal," you said, leaning in to kiss him lightly. The kiss was chaste, but it carried the promise of a million more to come, each one more passionate than the last.
The door to the room swung open and in barged a rush of laughter and chatter as your wedding party piled in. "Alright, Mr. & Mrs. Burrow," your wedding planner called out, her voice a mix of hurry and delight. "It's showtime!"
-
"You're up to something," Joe murmured, catching the mischievous glint in your eyes as you sauntered into the hotel room. The evening air clung to your skin, carrying the faint scent of your wedding flowers with you. He was lounging on the plush bed, scrolling through his phone, his muscular form stretched out in the white cotton pajamas that matched your own.
"Me? I'm not up to anything," you retorted, your laughter twinkling in the quiet space. The sight of you made Joe's heart stumble, the way you filled out those pajamas like they were tailored just for youâthey were. He knew that look, though. The way you bit your lower lip and your hips swayed just so. You had something on your mind, and it sure as hell wasn't sleep.
Joe set his phone aside, settling deeper into the pillows. "You're smiling too hard for it to be nothing," he said, a playful smirk tugging at the corners of his lips.
You prowled closer, your smile deepening with the grin that spread across your face. "Maybe I'm just happy to see my husband," you said, your voice a purr that sent a shiver down Joe's spine. "My shiny, new husband."
He knew better.
That glint in your eye was the same one you had before you tackled him into bed back home. Before he could say anything else, you straddled him, your thighs pressing into his hips, palms pressing him into the hotel bedsheets eagerly.
"Your wife is ovulating, Mr. Burrow," you whispered into his ear, your hot breath tickling his neck. Joe couldn't help but laugh, his hands instinctively reaching to grip your waist.
"And that means?" Joe replied, his voice a low rumble that vibrated through your body. Despite his amusement, there was a flicker of interest in his eyes.
"It means I want you to do something about it," you said, your voice dropping to a seductive whisper. You began to rock your hips against him, the friction making you wetter by the second. Joe's laughter died in his throat, and he stared up at you, his eyes darkening.Â
"I know how much you love it when I'm like this," you cooed, your hands sliding under his shirt to trace the contours of his solid upper body.
"Is that so?" Joe said, his voice thick with amusement. He couldn't deny that there was something about you at your most aroused that made his heart skip a beat. It had become a secret little card between the two of you, one that you loved to play when you knew he was at his most susceptible.
"Mmhmm," you murmured, your teeth grazing his earlobe. "Remember that time you said I smell like heaven when I'm ovulating?"
Joe couldn't help the smirk that tugged at his lips. "I might have said something like that," he admitted, his voice a low, playful rumble.
You leaned in closer, your breath hot against his skin. "Well, heaven's calling," you said, your hips moving in a slow, deliberate circle that made Joe's eyes roll back in his head.
"You're going to be the death of me, woman," he groaned, his hands tightening around your waist as you continued her delicate torture.
Your grin grew wider, your brown eyes gleaming with mischief. "Is that a 'yes'? Youâre not too tired?" you asked, your voice dripping with sweet seduction.
"It's definitely a 'yes', sweetheart. I could never be too tired for you," Joe managed, his breath hitching as your hips continued their mesmerizing dance. He pushed your pajama shorts aside, the gold wedding band glittering against his skin as his fingers moved to reveal your slick folds.
"But you better be quiet," he warned, glancing over at the walls that separated them from your parents' rooms on either side. "I don't think they need to know what we're up to over here."
âItâs our wedding night, baby. I think our parents would hope we'd be having dirty marital sex on our wedding night,â you giggled, the sound light and airy, as you leaned down to kiss him. "They want grandbabies and this is how it happens."
Your tongue slipped into his mouth, tasting like mint and a hint of the champagne you had picked out for the reception. The kiss grew deeper, more urgent, until Joe couldn't take it anymore. He flipped you onto your back, his body covering yours, his cock pressing against your heat.
"You're so wet," he murmured, his voice filled with wonder and lust.
"Told you," you said, your voice a smug whisper. You reached down to stroke him through his pants, feeling him twitch against your palm. "You always get me like this."
Joe chuckled, his blue eyes sparkling with desire. "So itâs not just the multi-million dollar fortune now in your name?" he murmured, kissing you deeply.
"We can't have you waking up the whole floor." He pulled your pajama shorts down before throwing them over his shoulder to discard them. Your laughter was muffled against his neck as he positioned himself between your legs.
He slid into you with a groan, the feeling of your tight warmth around him making him forget about the walls that were a little too thin. Your nails dug into his back as he began to move, slow at first, savoring every inch of you.
"Fuck," you breathed, your eyes squeezed shut. "You feel so good."
Joe's teeth sank into your shoulder to keep his own moans quiet. "You're so wet, baby," he murmured, his voice strained. "So, so wet."
"I can't help it," you panted, your legs wrapping around him. "You looked so good out there, all husband-y and...fuck, Joe, right there."
Joe chuckled against your neck, his teeth grazing your skin as he hit your sweet spot with precision. He knew exactly how to make you squirm. He loved it when you lost control, when you forgot about the world around you and just focused on the pleasure he was giving you.
"Iâm so thankful youâre mine," he whispered, his hips driving into you with increasing force. The headboard hit the wall with a muffled thump that made you both giggle, despite the intensity of the moment. You wrapped your arms around Joe's neck, your nails lightly raking his scalp as you pulled him closer, silently begging for more.
Joe's breath was hot against your neck as he murmured, "You're so fucking tight."
The words sent a shiver down your spine, and you couldn't help but moan a little louder. "Shh," Joe said, a hint of laughter in his voice as he pressed a finger to your lips. "These walls are so thin."
You rolled your eyes playfully, but your breath hitched when Joe reached over to grab a pillow. He slammed it over your face, muffling your laughter. "Not helping," you mumbled into the softness.
He threw the pillow aside with a laugh and slid his thumb into your mouth instead, your teeth grazing the pad as you tried to keep your noises down. It was a struggle, especially as he found his rhythm and your moans grew more insistent. The scent of your arousal filled the air, and Joe couldn't resist the urge to bury his nose in your neck, inhaling deeply. It was like a drug, making his cock throb even more.
"So good. My wifeâs so tight, squeezing her husbandâs cock so well, like she was fuckin' made for it," he groaned, his fingers tightening in your hair as he held you in place. Your eyes were squeezed shut, your body arching up to meet his every thrust. The quiet room was filled with the slick sounds of skin on skin, your harsh breathing, and the occasional muffled curse.
"You're so...so...oh, fuck, Joey," you managed, your words barely audible around his fingers. Your legs trembled, your body poised on the edge of release.
Joe couldn't hold back his own groans any longer. He knew he was pushing your buttons, and the way you squirmed beneath him was all the encouragement he needed. "I know, baby," he murmured, his voice a mix of affection and lust. "You're close, aren't you?"
You nodded, your eyes squeezed shut as Joe picked up the pace. You were close, so close, but he wasn't done with you yet. He pulled his thumb from your mouth and slammed into you harshly, his balls slapping against your ass. The sound was obscene, but Joe couldn't bring himself to care. All he could focus on was the feel of your tight pussy clamping down around him, your walls pulsing with each thrust.
Your eyes snapped open, and you looked up at Joe with a mix of love and pure desire. "Don't stop," you begged, your voice a breathy whisper. "Please, Joe, don't stop."
"Never," Joe promised, his voice a gruff growl. He thrust deeper, feeling your muscles tighten around him. He knew you were close, and the thought of you coming apart under him was all he needed to fall over the edge. He reached down to rub your clit in tight circles, his fingers slipping and sliding in your wetness. "I'm gonna fill this sweet pussy up. Make my wife happy like I vowed. Might even make you a mama." he murmured, his voice low and guttural.
Your eyes rolled back in your head, your breath coming in short gasps. The pressure was building, coiling in your stomach, threatening to break free. You nodded, your hips bucking up to meet his. "Please, Joe," you whimpered, your voice barely above a whisper. "I need it."
With a powerful thrust, Joe gave you what you craved. Your eyes snapped open, and you bit down on your lip to keep from screaming. He didn't stop, though, his strokes growing faster and more erratic.
"That's it, baby. Keep squeezing me, just like that. Gonna make you feel real good, sweetheart. Get you all nice and warm with my cum, huh?" Joe's voice was a gruff whisper in your ear as you rode the waves of pleasure.Â
âIs that what you want?â His words were like gasoline on a fire, sending sparks of arousal through your body. You could feel him thicken inside you, his breaths growing harsher with each thrust. âYou want me to give you a baby?â
Your eyes squeezed shut as you nodded, your hips moving in time with Joe's. The room was a whirlwind of sensations, the scent of your sex mingling with the faint ocean breeze that slipped through the open balcony doors. The sound of the waves outside seemed to echo the rhythm of your lovemaking, a steady movement building up to a crescendo.
"Oh, Joe," you breathed, your voice strained. "Fuck, yes. Yes."
Your eyes met, and Joe saw the desperation in them, the need for release that mirrored his own. He leaned down, his mouth claiming yours in a fierce kiss as he slammed into you, giving you everything he had. Your nails dug into his back, your body writhing beneath his. And then you were there, your orgasm crashing over you like a wave, your inner muscles clenching down around his cock in a spasm of pleasure. He spilled over the edge at the same time, filling you with his hot, thick spend. You both froze for a moment, the room silent except for the harsh sounds of your panting.
"Holy shit," Joe breathed, collapsing onto you with a satisfied groan. His chest heaved with each breath, his heart racing in his ears. The feel of you, warm and wet around him, was heavenly. He kissed your neck, your skin salty with a sheen of sweat.
You chuckled, the vibrations traveling through Joe's body. "You're such a romantic," you teased. "Now get off, you're 20 pounds heavier than normal."
"Nah, gotta make sure it all stays inside, you know?" Joe quipped, his voice muffled by your shoulder. He didn't move, enjoying the feeling of your body still quivering with the aftershocks of your climax. You giggled, your breath warm against his neck.
"You're ridiculous," you murmured, your voice still shaky with pleasure. Joe's laughter rumbled against your skin, his body a delicious weight that you didn't want to shift just yet. The two of you lay there, tangled in the sheets, your hearts racing in sync.
"There's no way they didn't hear something," you said, your voice a mix of exasperation and amusement. You could feel Joe's cock still twitching inside you, the evidence of his release seeping out to wet the bed between your legs.
"Your mom's been talking nonstop about a grandchild. I think she'll appreciate the knowledge that we're working on it right away," Joe replied with a lazy grin, not bothering to move. You playfully slapped his ass, making him yelp.
"Get off, you're crushing me," you giggled, pushing at Joe's shoulder. He chuckled, rolling off you and flopping onto his back. His cock slipped out with a wet sound, and you couldn't help but stare at the mess you had made. You felt a warm trickle of his cum slide out of you and trickle down your thigh.
Joe glanced over and grinned. "Looks like we've got a little cleanup on aisle five," he said, gesturing to the wet spot on the bed.
You threw a pillow at him, which he caught with ease. "You're so annoying," you said, your voice filled with affection. "If you're gonna be into this breeding kink thing, you're gonna have to help clean me up after."
Joe sat up, his chest heaving from the exertion. "Fair enough," he said, tossing the pillow back at you. "Can I lick you clean?" he offered with a waggle of his eyebrows, his voice filled with mischief.
You rolled your eyes, but the heat in your gaze betrayed your arousal. "Perv," you murmured, a smirk playing on your lips.
Joe shrugged, unabashed. "What? Is that a yes?" He leaned over to nip at your earlobe, sending a shiver down your spine. Despite the teasing, there was a genuine question in his voice, his breath hot against your skin.
"Not today, playboy," you said, swatting Joe's hand away as he reached for your still-sensitive folds. "But I'll keep it in mind for later."
You slithered out of bed, the dampness between your legs leaving a stain on the sheet. "For now, I'm going to take a shower before your mom starts knocking on the door wondering if we're okay."
Joe watched your retreating form with a lazy smile, his eyes lingering on your round, firm ass as you disappeared into the en suite bathroom. "Without me?" he called after you, pouting as he feigned disappointment in his voice.
When you looked at him over your shoulder, a smile pulling at your lips, he leaped out of bed. His cock was still half-hard as he chased after you, his playfulness evident in every step.
-
You stretched your limbs against the crisp, white villa sheets. You blinked your brown eyes open to the early morning sun peeking through the luxurious curtains, hinting at the promise of a new day. Next to you, Joe lay still, his chest rising and falling with the steady rhythm of sleep. His dirty blonde hair was a mess, a heartwarming contrast to his usually meticulous grooming.
You couldn't help but smile at the sight of the man who was now your husband. Your first days as a married couple had been filled with passion and laughter, and you were eager to start this new chapter of your life together.
Your private plane ride had been nothing short of a dream. The thrilling rush of flying high above the clouds, sipping champagne, and even sneaking away to join the mile-high club in the spacious bathroom.
As you slipped out of bed, the soft carpet whispered a greeting beneath your bare feet. You padded over to the floor-to-ceiling window, taking in the breathtaking view of the tropical paradise that stretched out before you. The sea was a canvas of azure, blending into the horizon where the sun had just begun to paint streaks of gold and pink. It was the perfect setting for a honeymoon, and you couldn't have been more grateful for Joe's thoughtful surprise.
As you continued to gaze at the view, you felt Joe's arms snake around your waist from behind. He pulled you into his embrace, pressing a soft kiss to the nape of your neck. "Good morning, Mrs. Burrow," he murmured, his voice thick with sleep and a hint of pride. You giggled, feeling the warmth of his body against yours.
"Good morning, Mr. Burrow," you replied, leaning into his touch. "I can't believe we're actually here." You twisted around in his arms, your smile widening as you met his gaze. Joe's blue eyes sparkled with love as he said, "I know what you mean. I had to pinch myself during the flight to make sure it wasn't just a dream."
"Was that before or after we christened the plane's bathroom?" You quipped, your eyes dancing with mischief. Joe chuckled, his arms tightening around you as you shared the intimate memory.
"Before," he said, his voice low and playful. "But I'm sure we can make some more memories today if you're up for it."
You decided to shower together, the warm water cascading over your bodies as you soaped each other up. The sensual act of washing each other had become a morning ritual for you, a gentle reminder of your love and devotion. As you stepped out, Joe couldn't resist smacking your ass playfully, making you yelp in surprise. You shot him a mock glare, which quickly melted into a grin as you grabbed a towel and dried off.
Dressing in your swimwear, you headed down to breakfast. The hotel had laid out a spread that could feed a small army, but you kept it simple: avocado eggs benedict for you and an omelet for him, a side of crispy bacon for you both. You sat by the pool, sipping on tropical smoothies, the gentle sound of the waves in the distance setting the mood for the day ahead. You felt your excitement build as you listened to Joe recount the plans he had made for your day.
Your midday snorkeling adventure was nothing short of magical. The crystal-clear waters revealed a vibrant underwater world of coral reefs and a rainbow of fish. You couldn't help but cling to Joe's arm in amazement as you floated above the aquatic wonderland. His constant, nerdy stream of ocean facts kept you laughing. You held hands underwater, your wedding rings glinting in the sunlight that pierced through the surface, a symbolic declaration of your commitment to each other.
-
"You're so sunburnt," you teased, your eyes sparkling with mirth as you traced your finger across Joe's pink shoulder. Your own skin, kissed by the sun, had a warm glow that contrasted with the vibrant, floral-printed sundress that clung deliciously to your curves like a second skin.
Joe groaned dramatically, his fair complexion suffering from the tropical heat more than your naturally darker skin. "You think that's funny?" he shot back, though his smile gave away his playful annoyance.
You had spent the entire day snorkeling in the crystal waters and lounging under the palm trees, and Joe in all his stubbornness had decided against sunscreen, claiming it would be nice to get a "tan" in. Needless to say, the Caribbean sun had been less than kind to his poor, Midwestern pale skin. You had been more fortunate, your skin a beautiful canvas of brown with the hint of a shimmer from your coconut-scented sunscreen.
"It's hilarious, actually," you said, leaning in to kiss his burnt nose. "Come on. We can grab some aloe from the gift shop for your poor, crispy skin."
Joe rolled his eyes, a smirk playing at the corner of his lips. "Oh, the joys of being married to a smartass," he murmured, pulling you closer to his side. Your hand splayed across his chest, ring catching the golden sunlight as he pressed a fleeting kiss to your temple.
"You love this smart ass," you quipped back, gasping with surprise as Joe's left hand reached down to smooth over the fabric covering your ass.
"I do love this ass," Joe murmured lowly, delivering a full-handed squeeze to each of your cheeks. "No lie."
After retrieving the aloe from the gift shop, you retreated to your luxurious villa. The room was bathed in the soft glow of the setting sun, casting a warm, romantic light over the plush California king-sized bed and the floor-to-ceiling windows that revealed the stunning view of the ocean. You carefully applied the cool aloe vera gel to Joe's sun-bitten skin, your gentle touch offering a sweet respite from the sting.
Joe's eyes fluttered shut as you worked your way down his back, your fingers tracing the contours of his muscles, which had been honed from countless hours in the gym and on the field. He could feel the tension of the day melting away under your touch.
"I'm sorry, baby," you hummed softly as Joe hissed when you reached a particularly tender spot. "I know it stings."
"It's okay," Joe managed through gritted teeth, his eyes still closed. "Guess I'll have to stay out of the sun tomorrow."
You chuckled, your hands continuing their soothing dance across his skin. "I can't imagine that happening. It's so beautiful out there," you said, glancing out at the horizon where the sun was dipping below the waves.
"Just means I get to stay in bed with you all day," Joe murmured, his voice thick with innuendo. He turned his head from his spot on his stomach, looking at you over his shoulder with a smoldering gaze.
Your laughter turned into a knowing smile, and you leaned in to kiss the back of his neck. "Is that a promise?" you asked, your voice dropping to a whisper that sent shivers down his spine.
Joe's gaze met yours in the reflection of the large, ornate mirror on the opposite wall. "I'm a man who takes his vows seriously," he replied, his voice low and gruff with desire. Your eyes darkened with anticipation as you set the aloe aside, replacing it with a bottle of massage oil. You climbed back onto the bed, straddling his back with the bottle balanced delicately in your hand.
"Let's see if we can make this feel a little better," you said, your tone a mix of sweetness and conspiracy. You began to work the oil into his shoulders, your soft, skilled hands kneading out the knots that had formed from a full day of swimming and sun.
Joe groaned in pleasure, his eyes still locked on yours in the mirror. "You're a miracle worker," he murmured, feeling the heat of the oil and your touch seep into his sore muscles.
You grinned, your eyes glued to his baby blues. "Just doing my wifey duties," you said, your voice dripping with sweetness. You continued to massage him, your hands moving in slow, firm circles that grew increasingly sensual as you worked your way down his back.
Joe felt his body responding to your touch, his muscles relaxing and his skin prickling with goosebumps. "Is this part of the standard honeymoon package?" he managed to ask, his voice strained.
You giggled, your hands sliding lower, dangerously close to the waistband of his swim trunks. "Oh, this is a special upgrade," you whispered, your breath hot against his ear as you leaned forward to press your chest to his back. "Just for my favorite man."
Your thumbs dipped beneath the fabric, tracing the waistline of his trunks and sending a jolt of electricity through his body. He bit his lip, his eyes never leaving yours in the mirror. "What else does this upgrade include?" he asked, his voice a low growl.
"Well," you began, your hands moving to the back of his trunks, "It's a full-service deal. I'll take care of every inch of you." You tugged the material down, exposing his firm, sun-neglected ass. His skin was tight and pale, practically begging for the warmth of your palms.
With a devilish smirk, you started to massage the oil into his ass, your touch feather-light at first, teasing him with the promise of more. Joe's breath hitched, his body tensing under your touch. You leaned down, your chest brushing against his back as you kissed the top of his shoulder. "Do you like that?" you whispered, your breath hot on his skin.
Joe's only response was a nod, his eyes squeezed shut in focus. You chuckled, your hands growing bolder, kneading his cheeks with a firmness that made him moan. Your fingers danced closer to his crack, and you could feel his arousal growing against your thigh.
"Just keep that finger to yourself, missy," Joe warned playfully, his voice strained with pleasure. Your disappointed groan was like music to his ears, and he felt his cock twitch against the mattress at the sound.
Your response was to give his right cheek a gentle smack, the sound echoing through the room. "One of these days, I'll get what I want," you teased, your hands leaving their spot on his ass to work at his shoulders once more. The warmth from your touch seeped into Joe's bones, and he couldn't help but let out a low moan.
"One of these days," he echoed, his voice thick with desire, "but not today." You knew he was enjoying the anticipation, the buildup of pleasure that you so skillfully crafted. You leaned in closer, your breasts pressing into his back again as you whispered a command into his ear to flip over.
With a groan, Joe obeyed, his cock standing at full attention underneath his swim trunks as he lay on his back, staring up at the ceiling fan that lazily spun above you. You took in the sight of your husband, your eyes lingering on the trail of hair that led from his navel to his groin, the faintest dusting of sun freckles across his shoulders, and the way his chest stood proud and firm. You couldn't help but feel a surge of pride knowing that this man, this powerful, successful man, was all yours.
Straddling his hips, you leaned over to kiss him, your oiled hands sliding over his chest. Your kisses grew more heated, Joe's hands coming up to grip your ass firmly, now his turn to kneed your flesh. You felt his cock throb against your inner thigh and you broke away, breathless. "Someone's eager," you teased, your eyes sparkling with excitement.
"You have no idea," Joe murmured, his voice breaking with surprise as you playfully pinched his nipples. You straightened your back as you sat up, your crotch slotted perfectly over his erection. Your manicured nails trailed down his stomach, the cool metal of your wedding ring sending goosebumps skittering across his skin. Joe's hands moved to your waist, his thumbs playing with the soft material of your dress. His blue eyes blazed with need as he took in your beauty, the way your tits strained against the fabric, the curve of your hips, the shadow between your thighs that promised heaven.
"You should wear these dresses more often," Joe said, his voice strained as you ground your hips against his. The dresses in question had been a staple to your honeymoon wardrobe, all thin straps and flowing in every color under the rainbow. You leaned back, arching your spine, giving him a better view of your body.
"You like them? Maybe I'll start wearing them to your games," you quipped, your eyes dancing with mischief. Joe's grip tightened on your waist, his mind racing with the thought of you in this dress, teasing him in front of the cameras. He could picture your figure amplified on national television as the color commentators declared you as his wife, your new last name rolling off their tongues easily.
"That's what I'm afraid of," Joe chuckled, his thumbs stroking your hips as he fought to keep his cool. "No way are you distracting my focus like that."
You giggled, your hands sliding down to grip the bulge of his dick through the fabric of his trunks. "But you'd love it," you whispered, your teeth grazing his earlobe. "Imagine every time you looked over at the sidelines and saw me sitting there, you'd know exactly what's waiting for you after the game."
Joe's eyes rolled back in his head as you squeezed him lightly, his hips bucking involuntarily. "I don't think I'd be able to play," he managed to murmur, his voice tight with need. "I'd spend the whole game thinking about tearing that dress off you. And I don't think I'd be the only one thinking that."
You laughed, your grip tightening on Joe's cock. "We wouldn't want that," you said, your voice a sweet purr. You sat up straight, your oiled hands sliding down your thighs to rest on Joe's. "But you can take it off me now."
He took a deep breath, his nostrils flaring with lust as he sat up and reached for the hem of the sundress. His eyes were trained on your exposed skin as he tugged the dress up over your head. He threw the thin fabric to the side, leaving you perched pretty on his lap. The ruched, bridal white string bikini you had been wearing underneath the dress contrasted beautifully against your shimmering skin.
"You're so beautiful," Joe murmured, his voice filled with awe. His eyes roamed over your body, taking in the fullness of your breasts, and the way your stomach dipped before flaring out into your hips. You leaned into him, your heart racing as his hands found the strings of your bikini top.
With a swift pull, the fabric gave way and your breasts spilled out, bouncing slightly with the movement. Joe's mouth watered as he reached out, cupping one in his hand, his thumb brushing over the hardened nipple. You gasped, arching into his touch. The coolness of the room washed over your bare skin, making you feel even more exposed and alive.
Joe's eyes never left yours as he leaned in to capture your nipple between his teeth, his tongue swirling around the sensitive bud. Your breath hitched, your hands tangling in his hair as you held him to your skin. He kissed and nipped at one peak before moving on to the other, his mouth and teeth teasing you until you were squirming in his lap.
Your hips rocked against him, your pussy slick and hot through the fabric of your bikini bottoms. Joe's cock strained against the confines of his trunks, desperate for release. He reached up, his fingers undoing the strings of your bottoms, and with a firm tug, they too gave way. Your body was laid bare before him, your skin glistening with tanning oil and the light sheen of arousal.
"Your turn," you murmured, your voice thick with desire. You pushed at Joe's shoulders, urging him to lie back on the bed. He did so willingly, his cock bobbing free as you slid his trunks down his legs. Your eyes were glued to his cock, your mouth watering at the sight of his thick, veined shaft.
Without a word, Joe lay back on the bed, his cock standing proud and eager against his stomach. You took a moment to appreciate the view, your eyes drinking in every inch of him. He was perfection personified, and you felt a thrill knowing you were the one who got to claim him.
"Let me taste you, sweetheart," Joe whispered, his voice husky with need as he maneuvered your back to fall against the crisp, white sheets. Your eyes widened in surprise but you didn't resist, your legs falling open to give him access to your slick folds. He kissed and nibbled at your inner thighs, his tongue tracing the path to your core as you squirmed with anticipation. His hands ran up the sides of your thighs, gently caressing the skin before moving them to rest on his shoulders, giving him the perfect angle to dive in.
Your breath caught in your throat as his tongue parted you, tasting your sweetness. You could feel his breath hot against your pussy, sending shivers down your spine. Joe took his time, savoring your flavor, exploring every inch of you with a hunger that made your toes curl. Your grip on the sheets tightened as Joe's tongue swirled around your clit and flattened against your folds, the pressure building until you could hardly stand it.
He knew exactly how to drive you wild. With each flick of his tongue, you felt yourself inch closer to the precipice of ecstasy. "Joe," you breathed weakly, your voice trembling with desire. "I'm gonna come."
He chuckled against you, the vibration sending a fresh wave of pleasure through your core. "That's the plan, babe," he murmured, his voice muffled by the wetness of your pussy. He picked up the pace, his tongue dancing and flicking in a way that made your hips buck and your breath hitch. You threw your head back, short, strangled breaths leaving your mouth as your eyes squeezed shut, Joe's mouth worked you into a frenzy.
The room filled with the sound of your moans and the wet, sloppy noises of Joe's enthusiastic indulgence mixing in with your glistening arousal. He was relentless, his tongue probing and lapping until you were sure you couldn't take anymore. You felt your orgasm building, a coil of tension in your belly that grew tighter and tighter with each pass of his tongue.
"Oh god, Joe," you panted, your hips rising to meet his mouth. Your hands tangled in his hair, pulling him closer, grinding your pussy against his face. His hands gripped your thighs, holding you in place as he feasted on your sweetness. You could feel the pressure building, the heat coiling in your core, ready to explode.
And then it did. With a moan that echoed through the villa, your body convulsed as waves of pleasure washed over you. Your muscles tightened around Joe's tongue, your juices flooding his mouth as you came harder than you ever had before. Joe groaned in satisfaction, his own arousal reaching new heights as he drank you in. He didn't stop until you were trembling and panting, your body a puddle of boneless bliss beneath him.
Your eyes slowly opened, and you looked down at Joe, your face warm and your chest heaving. "Damn, baby," you breathed, a lazy smile playing on your lips. "I knew you were a munch but that was⌠wow."
Joe looked up at you with a grin, his face shiny with her arousal. "I was face first in my wife's pussy, couldn't help it," he said, his voice filled with a cocky confidence that made your heart race even faster. He kissed his way back up your body, leaving a trail of heat and wetness in his wake. When he reached your mouth, you tasted yourself on his lips, a heady mix of salt and sweet that only heightened your desire.
Your kiss grew more intense, your tongues dancing together in a rhythm that mirrored the pulsing need between your legs. Joe reached up, cupping your breasts in his hands, his thumbs playing with your still-sensitive nipples. You moaned into his mouth, your hips lifting to meet his.
"Face the mirror, gonna take you from the back," Joe murmured against your neck, his breath hot and ragged. You eagerly complied, turning to face the mirror and scooting closer to the edge of the bed. Your heart thundered in your chest as you watched Joe's reflection, his muscles rippling as he moved behind you.
He slid his hand down your spine, sending shivers through your body, and gripped your waist, pulling you closer to his body. You felt the tip of his cock at your entrance, and you couldn't help but whimper with anticipation. The position was rare for you two, usually reserved for moments when Joe was feeling particularly possessive. Your eyes locked onto his in the mirror, and you watched as he lined himself up, his hand guiding his shaft to your awaiting heat.
With one smooth, powerful thrust, he filled you, making you moan out with a mix of pleasure and surprise. The angle was new, and it hit you in just the right way, making your pussy clench around him. Joe groaned, his eyes rolling back in his head as he took in the sight of his cock disappearing into your wetness. Your body was a work of art, and he couldn't get enough of watching you react to his touch.
He began to move, his hips sliding in and out of you with a rhythm that grew more intense with each stroke. Your breasts bounced with the motion, your hands straining to grip the sheets as you watched Joe's reflection in the mirror. His eyes were hooded with desire, his teeth bared in a feral grimace as he claimed your body.
Your walls stretched around him, your body adjusting to the new sensation of being taken from behind. Your breaths grew shorter, your moans growing louder with each thrust. Joe's grip on your waist tightened, his strokes deep and demanding as he watched you in the mirror. The sight of your face contorted in pleasure, your dark hair splayed across the pillows, and your body writhing under his, only spurred him on.
"You like that?" he growled, his voice low and possessive. You could only nod, your mouth forming silent words as you struggled to keep up with the overwhelming sensations. Joe's hand reached around to find your clit, his thumb pressing down in a steady, insistent rhythm that matched his thrusts.
"Yes, Joey, I fucking love it," you gasped, your eyes watching him move in the mirror. Your voice was a mix of desperation and pleasure, the words barely recognizable through your moans. His thumb circled your clit, applying just the right amount of pressure to send sparks of sensation through your body.
"I'm so lucky to have you," Joe murmured, your eyes glazed with pleasure as Joe's cock filled you completely. His hand slid down to cup your ass, his fingers digging in as he pulled you back into each thrust. The angle was exquisite, hitting all the right spots, and you knew this was going to be one of those moments that would be forever etched into your mind.
"You're everything I've ever wanted," you managed to pant, your body jolting with each impact of his hips slamming into you. Your inner walls quivered around him, your pussy greedily sucking him in deeper.
"I promise I'll spend every day of the rest of our lives making you feel like this," Joe groaned, his words punctuated by his relentless pounding. You could feel the tension coiling tighter within you, the promise of another earth-shattering orgasm just out of reach.
Your eyes remained locked with his in the mirror, the connection between you two more intense than ever. Your breathing grew ragged, your moans echoing off the walls as Joe picked up his pace. Each thrust was deeper, harder, more demanding, and you could feel yourself climbing toward the peak.
Suddenly, Joe leaned forward, his chest pressing against your back as one arm wrapped around your waist, holding you tightly against him. The other arm fell forward, caging your body in as his hand settled over yours, fingers intertwined, rings nudging against each other. Your chest collapsed, your nipples tightening as you grazed the coolness of the mattress. He whispered sweet, dirty nothings into your ear, his breath hot and ragged, sending shivers down your spine.
"I want to see you come, baby," Joe panted, his thrusts growing more erratic. "Go ahead, baby. Let go for me."
You felt your orgasm building, the pressure in your core growing stronger with each word. Your eyes squeezed shut as you tried to hold back the inevitable. But Joe's touch was too much. He knew just what you needed, and as his thumb circled your clit faster and his cock pounded into you harder, you couldn't resist anymore.
Your body tightened around him, your muscles clenching as you came, your walls pulsing with pleasure. You whimpered his name weakly, your body bucking wildly under his. Joe's eyes watched as you lost control, feeling your pussy grip him as you spilled over the edge. His own orgasm followed close behind, his cum spurting into you with a force that made you both groan.
Your bodies remained connected for a moment, both panting heavily, the sound of your mingled breaths the only noise in the quiet room. You felt Joe's cock soften inside you, and you leaned back into his chest, your body still trembling from the intensity of your lovemaking.
"I don't know if I can move," you murmured, your voice shaky with the aftermath of pleasure. Joe chuckled, kissing your shoulder before gently withdrawing and rolling over to your side. He pulled you close, wrapping his arms around your waist as you both stared at your reflections in the mirror.
"I love you so much, you know that?" Joe murmured into your ear, his breath still coming in pants as he held you close. Your head rested on his chest, your breathing finally starting to even out. You nodded, a content smile playing on your lips.
"I would hope so, you married me last week. You better love me," you replied, your voice teasing but filled with affection as you cuddled closer to Joe, your hand resting on his chest. You could feel the steady thump of his heart, a reminder of the passion you just shared.
The two of you lay there for a few moments, the sweat cooling on your bodies as the tropical breeze gently caressed your skin. You turned your head, your eyes meeting Joe's in the mirror. His gaze was warm, a soft smile playing on his lips as he stroked your hair.
"I think that's only the second time we've had sex in this bed," Joe said, his voice a low rumble against your ear.
You chuckled, your eyes fluttering shut as you nestled into his warmth. "It's not my fault you can't keep it in your pants long enough to make it to the bed, Burrow," you teased, feeling the warmth of his skin against your cheek.
"What's the point of a villa on a quiet island if we're not going to use every surface?" Joe replied with a smirk, his fingers tracing lazy circles into the skin of your lower back. You laughed, the sound vibrating against his chest as you rolled over to face him fully. His cock twitched helplessly as he watched you, the sight of your sated smile and glowing skin making him want you all over again.
But he knew you needed a break. And so, you lay together, your bodies entwined in a mess of limbs and damp sheets. Your hand found its way to his chest, playing with the light dusting of hair that trailed down to his stomach. You traced the path with your fingertip, watching his abs contract with each breath he took.
"What do you think your love language is?" you asked, your voice lazy and content. You traced the contours of Joe's chest with your finger, feeling the steady beat of his heart beneath your touch.
Joe smiled, his hand moving downward to squeeze your ass playfully. "I'd say my love language is definitely making you happy, especially when it involves me fucking you just the way you like it," he said, his voice filled with pride. You snorted, swatting his chest lightly. "Okay, in all seriousness, I think it's quality time. Nothing makes me happier than being close to you."
Your expression softened, your eyes shining with affection. "Mine's definitely words of affirmation," you murmured, your hand sliding up to caress his cheek. "I love it when you tell me how much you love me, how beautiful I am, how you chose me."
Joe leaned in, pressing a gentle kiss to your forehead. "I'll never run out of ways to tell you that," he promised, his thumb brushing your lower lip. "I guess I like that too. Hearing that I'm doing right by you. That you're happy. That I'm enough."
You felt a warmth spread through your chest at his vulnerable admission. "You are," you said, your voice firm. "More than enough. And I'll never get tired of telling you that." You leaned in to kiss him softly, the sweetness of the moment lingering between the two of you as your bodies settled.
"You wanna know something cool?" Joe hummed, pulling away from the kiss with a playful grin. You hummed in question, your eyes beginning to hood from the sleepiness that was slowly creeping in. "I'm your husband," he whispered, his voice filled with wonder and a hint of disbelief.
"I'm aware," you said with a roll of your eyes, though the smile on your face gave away the joy you felt at the reminder. "But you know what's even cooler than that?"
"What's cooler than being your husband?" Joe asked, his grin widening as he propped himself up on an elbow. His eyes searched yours, eager to hear your response.
"Cooler than that?" you teased, your voice playful. "I'm your wife. That's pretty cool."
Joe chuckled, his hand sliding up to squeeze your hand. "I guess it's a tie then," he conceded. Your smile grew as you watched the love dance in Joe's eyes, feeling it deep in your soul. You were married, and it was still so surreal. The last week had been a whirlwind of emotions, but this moment right here, with Joe's arms around you and the sound of your mingled breaths, was pure bliss.
The room was quiet except for the distant sound of waves crashing against the shore. Your eyes grew heavy, the exhaustion of the day catching up to you. You snuggled impossibly closer to Joe, your head resting on his chest, listening to the steady thump of his heart. He was your home, your sanctuary, and you never wanted to leave this tropical paradise.
#&. cassie writes.#joe burrow fanfic#joe burrow x reader#joe burrow imagine#joe burrow smut#joe burrow#joe burrow fan fic#joe burrow bengals#x black reader#black!fem!reader#x black fem reader#black!reader#black reader#bengals#joeyb
1K notes
¡
View notes